|
楼主 |
发表于 2009-7-24 19:18| 字数 342,479
|
显示全部楼层
Chapter Eleven
As she had for breakfast and lunch, Narcissa cast repelling charms on the boys’ new clothes while they ate their dinner. Had she not, it was obvious both boys would have ruined them. Harry was still a cleaner eater, but even he spilt his food occasionally. All three adults ate as well, but only Narcissa and Severus spoke. Remus was still coming to grips with Harry’s new condition and his attention was solely for the two toddlers before him. They were just finishing when a fire call came for Severus.
“I’ll be right back to give you two a bath.” Severus promised the boys and went to answer the floo.
“Professor Snape.” Madam Pomfrey’s voice said respectfully. “The vaccines have arrived for Harry. When will he be up to receiving them?”
“Tomorrow.” Severus inclined his head. “Would it be best for Harry to have an empty stomach?”
“A light dinner is preferable. That way he can sleep off any side-effects, and give it at least fifteen minutes to digest before bringing him up.”
“Then we will be there at seven. Be sure to have the infirmary empty.”
“I will see to it, Professor. Goodnight.”
“Goodnight, Madam Pomfrey.”
Severus straightened and made his way to the bathroom. The boys were naked and Narcissa and Remus had already gotten the bath water running. Draco held several toys and Harry was splashing softly at the slowly filling tub. Narcissa smiled at him and left, Remus following her. Severus rolled up his sleeves, scowling playfully at the boys, making them laugh.
“Alright. Let’s try and not make a mess.” He sighed and lifted them both into the warm water.
…
Ron waited impatiently. The library was closed, Madam Pince having left long ago for bed. The Slytherins said to meet them outside the library doors at ten o’clock, but it was getting close to ten thirty now. He shifted his feet nervously and promised himself he’d leave soon if the blonde oafs didn’t appear in ten more minutes. Just as he finished thinking that he heard someone approaching. Ron stiffened and drew back more into a shadowed alcove by the huge double doors.
“Weasly?” Goyle whispered loudly.
“Here.” Ron growled and stepped out into the open. The two blondes relaxed at seeing him and gestured for him to follow. Ron glared, but did as he was asked. “What took you so long?”
“Had to wait. Professor Snape is starting to patrol the dungeons again.” Crabbe answered and pulled the door shut as the three entered a dark and empty classroom. “Did you get a copy of the medical report?”
“No.” Ron flushed. He hadn’t been able to bring himself to speak to the other Gryffindors yet. He was still too angry and hurt.
“We saw Draco.” Goyle smiled. “He’s little. Just like you said. His mother said she was taking him away somewhere to wait for the spell to wear off. They didn’t mention Potter.”
Ron frowned, “When’s she taken him?”
“Already left. Last night from the sound of it.” Crabbe answered.
“Can’t be.” Ron pulled out the map. The Slytherins had wanted to hang on to it, but Ron had refused to tell them the passwords so it was pointless to try and keep it. Ron showed them what he already knew, having been watching the map whenever he had a chance; in case something changed. Narcissa Malfoy was in a room off Snape’s quarters and Baby Potter and Ray Malfoy were a few rooms down. The Slytherins frowned deeply at the map.
“Why are they still here?” Goyle rumbled.
“Maybe because they need to be here while the Professors figure out how to reverse the spell.” Ron said thoughtfully. “By saying they were leaving, they were protecting themselves from attack. Hiding in plain sight, as it were.”
The Slytherins shared a look before pulling their faces into puzzlement. They got the implications immediately without the redhead’s help, but they couldn’t let Ron know that. Draco was in danger more than Ron even knew. They both had received letters from their fathers asking what Draco’s protections were at school, and if the blonde could be lured outside so they could be the ones to capture or kill the betrayer. They had been relieved to be able to send word that Draco was no longer at Hogwarts. They would have to be very careful not to let on that Draco was still here. Though they did wonder how the Professor would explain his involvement to the Dark Lord, or the fact that he had not killed Draco when he had the chance.
…
Hermione looked up when she heard the portrait swing open. Ron hesitated when he saw her, but climbed through with every intention of ignoring her. Of course, the girl wasn’t about to let him go. Not when she had so much to say. She reached out for his arm, but froze when his blue eyes glared at her in warning. She choked back the tears she felt stirring and tried to speak calmly.
“Where were you?”
“What business is it of yours?” He growled, but softened at her stricken face.
“I was worried.” She said softly, but then stood straight and held her head high. “I am also a Perfect, Ron, and you are out past curfew.”
“What are you gonna do? Give me detention?” He asked, genuinely curious.
“No.” She frowned. “But I will have to if you keep it up. Ron. Please. Talk to me. We’re all worried. I even owled Professor Lupin. I thought if anyone, he might make it to Harry and make sure he is doing alright. I got a letter this morning and he said he was on his way to see Dumbledore. We might know more soon, and I thought you might like to know that Harry and Draco aren’t in the infirmary anymore. We don’t know where they are. I think its about time we confront Professor Snape on Harry’s progress, as well, and even try to get him to let us see him.”
Ron just looked at her, thinking. He knew where Harry and Draco were, but Hermione could know more about their actual condition, and that was more important than knowing where Harry was, wasn’t it? Plus, Hermione looked exhausted and sad. He wanted to go to her, kiss her, but he was still mad. They had treated him like shit, why should he go back? But there was Remus. The ex-professor could learn key information and he wanted to know what it was.
“Ron? I’m sorry. We were wrong to exclude you. We weren’t thinking straight. Please, forgive us?” Hermione asked hopefully when she saw him considering.
“Harry’s my best friend. I let him down in fourth year. You know that. I can’t do it again.”
“I know.” She whispered and took a step forward. He sighed and wrapped her in his arms. Hermione clutched at him and began to cry. Ron let her. “I missed you. I love you.”
“I missed you too, Hermione. We’ll work this out together.” Ron sighed, though he knew he couldn’t just drop Crabbe and Goyle. So he made up his mind to still meet with the Slytherins without telling the others. The big oafs might just be able to come up with something that the others couldn’t. There was no point in refusing help, especially since this problem wasn’t going away on its own.
…
Severus came back to his rooms after a short round of patrolling his dungeons. He usually did the whole school, but teaching on top of taking care of the boys, even with Narcissa’s help, was exhausting. Remus was sitting on the couch alone. When Severus had left, Narcissa was sitting up talking to him, but it looked like she had already gone to bed. The boys had been tucked in hours ago, but he felt restless with the wolf there so he went to look in on them.
The boys were sleeping peacefully. Draco was curled up on his side, his head resting right next to Harry’s, his breath gently caressing the brunette’s cheek and making a few strands of inky hair sway. Harry lay on his back, his thumb resting limply in his mouth. Severus sighed and knew this meant Harry was still bothered by the scare with Dumbledore. At least he was having no nightmares. That was encouraging. Severus closed the door silently before heading back toward the living room.
“Thank you for allowing me to stay.” Remus said quietly.
Severus didn’t answer. He went past the couch and entered his room. He came back in minutes with extra blankets and a pillow. He handed them both over to the lean man, his face smooth of any emotion; “It is no problem.”
“Goodnight.” Remus sighed sadly.
“I will be up for a while working in my study. You can find me there if you need anything. Goodnight.” Severus answered stiffly. He knew his manners. Remus was a guest and would be treated like one, but both men knew his heart wasn’t in it. There was just too much history between them for Severus to be comfortable with the wolf in his home or near Harry. But he was allowing it and that was all that mattered to Remus.
…
Harry woke first and smiled as he felt the blonde’s arms around him. He cuddled closer until Draco scrunched his face and opened his gray eyes. He sneezed as the baby’s hair tickled his nose and Harry laughed. The blonde smiled and reached over to the bedside table. He could just barely reach the small black glasses sitting there. Finally, he was able to hand them over.
“Thank you.” Harry said softly and tried to put them on, but his small fingers had a hard time.
Draco helped and between the two of them, got the black band around the back of Harry’s head and the glasses on straight. Draco laughed as the baby scowled grumpily, annoyed with needing the things. Narcissa walked in and smiled at the boys who were sitting up and ready to start the day even though the sun was still not fully up above the horizon.
“Morning, Mommy!” Draco yelled happily and reached for her to lift him out of the railed bed. Harry levitated himself out of the bed shortly after.
“What do you want to wear today, Dragon?” She asked as she opened Draco’s drawers and offered him the traditional three choices. The little boy picked dark blue shorts, white ankle socks, black dress shoes, and a white short-sleeved button-down shirt. Narcissa laughed as she gently helped him get into the outfit. “What’s the occasion?”
“Just feel like it.” Draco answered haughtily and his mother smiled down lovingly at him.
“Well, you look handsome.”
“Thank you. Now Baby!”
“What do you want to wear, Harry?” She levitated three choices. The boy looked between them for a minute before pointing shyly at the middle. She laughed and handed the clothes to Draco so that he could help Harry dress. It took several minutes, but finally Harry stood there in his bright white sneakers, black dress pants, and bright yellow silk button-down shirt. Personally, Narcissa would have picked black shoes to go with it, but didn’t say anything. They both looked adorable.
“You look wonderful, Harry. Now, are you two ready for breakfast?”
The boys nodded and Draco pulled Harry by the hand quickly out the door. Narcissa followed smiling. They entered the kitchen to find both Remus and Severus already up. The men smiled at Draco as he posed for them in his new outfit. Harry blushed at his side as the two men complimented them.
“You look very lovely, boys.” Severus told them.
“Wow. You two look like little gentlemen!” Remus smiled. “What are you all dressed up for?”
“Just felt like it.” Draco explained again and lifted his arms to tell his mother he was ready to be placed in his highchair. Remus reached for Harry without thinking.
Harry didn’t shrink away as he would have had it been Narcissa reaching for him, but he did pout out his lower lip, reach one hand out toward Severus, and say softly “Want Daddy.” Remus smiled and let Severus lift the small child. Harry hugged Severus’ neck and laid his head on the older man’s shoulder.
“How did you sleep?” Severus asked as he rubbed the small back.
“Fine, Daddy.”
“Good.” Severus placed him in the highchair and Harry settled with a happy smile. “What do you two want to do after breakfast?”
“I want to go shopping for new toys.” Draco said as he carefully ate. “I’m tired of all those toys.”
“They good toys.” Harry frowned.
“We keep them.” Draco assured. “We just get some more and we can play wi’ve them both.”
“We didn’t plan on a day out.” Narcissa told her son, knowing they hadn’t come up with a safe outside place yet. “Maybe another day.”
“How about we play Hide and Seek?” Remus asked, speaking before the glaring toddler could explode angrily. “We could use all the rooms and not just the playroom.”
“And later, after dinner, we have to go back and see Madam Pomfrey.” Severus added. “She needs to give Harry medicine so that he doesn’t get sick. If you’re both good while we’re there, maybe you will deserve new toys.”
“But Baby not sick.” Draco frowned confused. “Right?”
“I’m fine, Ray.” Harry assured him, smiling again.
“Then why?”
“All babies get vaccines so they don’t get sick as they grow up.” Narcissa explained. “You had yours already.”
“Oh.” He nodded. “Okay.”
The boys finished breakfast and then they all played a several hour long Hide and Seek game. The fast toddlers seemed to have the advantage, but the adults could out think them. Soon Severus’ quarters were filled with silence as the adults and children snuck and hid and hunted, but it was often shattered as childish laughter rang out as the adults and boys raced about. The boys didn’t mind when they were caught because they often got tickled (Harry even let Remus tickle him twice, but he still shied away from Narcissa). By the time snack and nap time rolled around, everyone was tired, the boys especially.
“Will you tell us a story?” Draco asked Remus sleepily. Severus had to leave to fix a problem between two fighting upper classmen Slytherins and Remus opted for the job of tucking them in since Harry was more comfortable with him. Narcissa didn’t mind.
“Sure.” He smiled, his amber eyes glowing happily as he sat. “What do you want it to be about?”
“Dragons.” Harry giggled and kissed Draco’s cheek. Draco smiled and draped an arm over Harry’s chest.
“Alright.” Remus ran his hands through both of the boys’ soft hair and began his tale.
…
“What is going on here?” Severus demanded in a soft icy voice. He stood behind Theodore Nott who had his wand out and pointed at seventh year Terence Higgs. Neither boy lowered their wands or spoke as their Head of House emerged from the dark dungeon shadows along the corridor. “You will answer me. Dueling in the open where anyone can see, have you no pride? No intelligence? You are upper class Slytherin. I will not stand for you disgracing that name.”
“We were just debating on that very thing.” Higgs glared at the younger boy across from him.
“Feel free to speak your ideas of House honor.” Severus drawled, his black eyes glittering dangerously. “Let us be sure that these differences are cleared before we leave.”
“As Slytherins, we will respect our Head of House, no matter personal feelings. Under no circumstance are we to publicly give offense to the Head.” Higgs said coldly, wand tip beginning to glow with his anger.
“I would respect any Head of Slytherin House.” Nott sneered. “As long as it was a true Slytherin in such a position.”
“You question me, Nott?” Severus slid forward.
“You let Draco go, didn’t you?” The boy said quickly, backing toward the seventh year. “You know there is a price on his head. Our Lord wants him and you told Ms. Malfoy what has happened and she has taken him out of reach.”
“You speak of what you do not know.” Severus whispered. “You’re a disgrace as a Slytherin. There is not only one motivation, cause, or goal to any action. You know this! Yes, the Dark Lord wants Draco Malfoy. But we were told not to expose ourselves in capturing him. I upheld my position, and I’ve gained Ms. Malfoy’s trust, so that when I may, without causing suspicions to fall on me, I will be able to carry out our Lord’s will. You are a pathetic child, Nott. Do not try and question those more powerful and intelligent than yourself. It will only cause you pain.”
Nott fell to the ground, grunting in pain. His body curled up protectively as he was assaulted by powerful invisible kicks. Higgs watched impassively, though Severus could see awe in his eyes for the wandless magic. The seventh year nodded and turned to leave. Severus waited a few moments more before lifting the spell. Nott was panting, blood trickling out of his mouth where he had bitten his own cheek.
“You are lucky you are my Slytherin.” Severus told him. “Otherwise you would have suffered under Crucio for questioning me, maligning my name. Go. And do not step an inch out of line. I don’t wish to hear of you for a while.”
The boy scrambled to his feet and limped as fast as he could away. Severus watched him go. His face was a blank mask, but inside he was sad. He saw himself in his students. Every year he watched as they made the same mistakes he made. And he knew not all of them would realize that it was indeed a mistake. It was painful to watch, painful to remember. But what else was he to do?
…
Narcissa watched Remus talk and play with the boys as they all ate dinner, but her attention was on Severus. The man had come back hours ago, but still hadn’t spoken or lost that hard glint in his eyes. This was the Severus she had known for years. It was amazing to see again and it brought home just how much he was changing since he had been assigned to Harry’s care. For the first time, she truly began to understand just how much Severus needed Harry. The young child was helping him heal when nothing, not even time, had been able to do the same.
“Done!” Draco said loudly with a smile.
“Come. Let’s get you cleaned up.” Narcissa smiled. “Then we’ll go and get Harry his vaccines.”
“Will it hurt?” Draco asked as he was set gently to the floor.
“Of course not. But it might give him a slight fever later. Hopefully he’ll sleep right through it and never know.”
“Are you done, Harry?” Remus asked the small boy. Harry nodded, his black hair swaying around his pretty smile. “Can I help you out so you can get washed up with Draco?”
“Daddy?” Harry looked to Severus.
Severus looked back, but his eyes were closed off. A sneer twisted his lips. “I’ve seen you let Mr. Lupin touch you, Harry. Go with him. You’ll be fine.”
“Yes, Daddy.” Harry whispered, his green eyes glittering with the beginnings of tears. Remus frowned at the other man, but lifted Harry from the chair. The boy squirmed to be put down and ran to the bathroom.
“Severus…”
“Go.” He said shortly. He stood and went to the sitting room without another word. He waited for the children to be ready and in a few minutes Narcissa came over with the boys following her. Remus was last. Severus picked up the floo urn.
Remus turned the tearful Harry to face him and knelt before the boy, “Harry, I’m going to go talk to some people. I’ll be back in the morning, okay?”
“Okay.” Harry nodded, voice a sad whisper. Draco came over and wrapped him in a hug and Harry leaned his head on his shoulder.
“You two be good.” Remus smiled and ruffled their hair. He stood and gave Severus a meaningful look before turning to Narcissa. “Thank you.”
“You’re welcome.” She smiled and walked him to the door. “Can we expect you for breakfast?”
“Yes.” Remus gave her a small bow and slipped out the door, heading away from the dungeons.
“Come here.” Severus told the boys, not waiting for Narcissa to join him. Draco released Harry and came over, eyes wide. But Harry hesitated. “Harry. Come.”
The boy walked over. With every step he began to shake more. Draco turned around to go back to him, but Narcissa grabbed his arm. She knelt and began whispering in his ear. The boy stood tense and stock-still, eyes glittering with unhappiness. But he didn’t try to move out of his mother’s embrace or go to his friend. Severus sneered at all this and reached out for Harry’s arm. Harry let him, but began sobbing.
“What’s the matter?” Severus asked coldly.
“P-please. I’m so-sorry. I’ll be g-g-good.” Harry begged.
“What are you talking about?” The black-eyed man snapped. “Stop crying this instant!”
“I’m s-s-sorry!” Harry wailed. “I’m sorry, D-daddy! Don’t h-h-hurt me! I’ll b-be good!”
Severus froze. He looked down at the hysterical child, who still wasn’t trying to get away from him despite his fear. Then he slowly began to understand. He turned his head and looked at the fireplace. Painful clarity descended on him. He remembered what the house had shown him, remembered a three year old Harry being drug to the stove where Vernon punished him by sticking his little hands and arms against the red hot burners. Severus remembered Harry’s screams, remembered the horrid smell. He remembered Harry fighting wildly. But Harry wasn’t fighting now. Harry truly loved him and didn’t want to disobey, not even if it were to save him pain.
…
Narcissa watched as Severus crumpled to his knees and wrapped Harry up in his arms. The man rocked the child back and forth, whispering that he would never hurt him like that. That he wasn’t punishing him and that he wasn’t bad. Harry clung to him, crying loudly. Narcissa shifted her position and with a shock she realized that there were silent tears rolling down Severus’ face as well. She stood with Draco in her arms. He opened his mouth to protest, but she shook her head sharply in warning. The blonde relented and let himself be carried from the room.
…
After long minutes, Severus pushed Harry slightly away, “I was not mad at you, Harry. I was mad at other things. I promise I will always tell you if you do something to anger me.”
“You still love me?” Harry asked tiredly, eyes bright as they stared into Severus’ own.
“I still do.” Severus promised softly and Harry smiled a beautiful smile.
“Is okay, Daddy.” He promised, his little hands coming up to wipe away Severus’ tears. The man started, surprised. He hadn’t even realized he had been crying. “Love you too.”
“Good.” Severus hugged him tightly. “Now let’s go wash our face. I’m sure Draco is going out of his mind with worry by now.”
Harry giggled. Severus smiled as well and took him to the kitchen where Narcissa was talking to an unhappy Draco. The blonde’s head snapped around when they entered and Harry allowed himself to be put on the floor. Draco ran to him and hugged him, glaring all the while up at Severus.
“I’m sorry, Draco.” He told the child. “I will try not to frighten Harry any more.”
“Better not.” The boy glared and took Harry’s hand to lead him to the bathroom.
“Will you floo Madam Pomfrey, Narcissa? I think we should put off the vaccines until tomorrow.”
Narcissa nodded and Severus gave her a little smile before following the children. She watched him go, feeling very grateful for the special little brunette that was worming his way into their hearts and changing them for the better.
…
Remus sighed as he stepped out of the Gryffindor common room. It was just past dinner. He wondered if Harry’s vaccinations had gone well. He wondered what was wrong with Severus. He hoped everything was alright. But he had things to do before he could go back to Harry. He had gone to the Gryffindors to tell them a little about Harry’s condition and to assure them Harry was in good hands. H owed them that much since it had been they who told him Harry had been hurt.
With that out of the way, he made his way to Dumbledore’s office. Every step had his self-control crumbling and his rage slipping free. By the time he was climbing the stairs behind the gargoyle, his eyes were glowing golden and his face was set in a hard cold mask. Dumbledore said nothing as Remus stalked to the front of his desk. The two men stared at each other, one waiting and the other struggling to regain control.
“Did. You. Know.” He stated slowly, gold eyes burning on the ancient wizard.
Dumbledore sighed, “Remus, my boy, …”
“Did YOU?” Remus roared, and then visibly pulled a brittle calm back over his face. “Answer the question, Albus.”
“No.” He answered firmly, eye never wavering. “I did not. I was aware Harry was unhappy there and didn’t like going home, but I never guessed it was as bad as it was. I would never leave a child purposely in such a situation.”
“If you knew he was unhappy, why didn’t you look into the situation?” Remus asked quietly. “Why didn’t you do that anyway?”
“I couldn’t bring attention to that house, Remus. You know that. Death Eaters were hunting for him and it’s even worse now that Voldemort is back. The wards protecting him at his aunt’s house would not have stood against a direct attack for long.”
“That is no excuse.” Remus bit out. “You could have found time, Albus, for one short visit. Five minutes to make sure he was alright. That was your responsibility.”
“I know.” Dumbledore seemed to collapse in on himself miserably. “I have failed him. But I was only trying to protect him, to keep him safe and alive.”
Remus just stared at him, “And all the events while he was here? You were watching over him directly. What excuses do you have for allowing those situations to become as desperate as they did?”
“Remus, you can’t believe that I knew of all that and did nothing?” Dumbledore frowned severely.
“Why didn’t you contact me when Harry came back to school as he did? I am Harry’s godfather now that Sirius is dead.” Remus’ voice had sunk to a low growl. “No. It’s no matter, why or what your reasons are. I will take no more missions, Albus. I’m through working for you. Harry is my only concern. Tonight I return to the pack to tell them I will not be coming back.”
“Remus.” Dumbledore was sitting straight now.
“This is not up for negotiation, Headmaster.” Remus said in a dangerous whisper.
Dumbledore didn’t stop him as he turned and walked stiffly from the room. He stared after his ex-agent and sighed heavily. Things were falling apart. Fawkes trilled, but it wasn’t as comforting as it could have been. Even Fawkes was worried. He frowned. The times were getting desperate. He’d have to act soon.
…
Severus sat bolt upright, his hair was mussed and his breathing was fast and shallow. His eyes pierced the shadows around the room, his ears strained to hear any disturbance. Nothing. Blinking the sleep from his eyes, he realized what woke him. There was a pressure against his skin, a rhythmic thrumming that washed through him bone deep like some huge silent heartbeat. The air was filled with a writhing magic.
He scrambled from the bed and rushed to the boys’ room. Narcissa was already there, banging on the door, occasionally shooting spells to try and open it. Nothing was working. Severus added his skill to hers, but no matter what he tried the door remained firmly locked. Narcissa was screaming for Draco to answer her, but they could hear nothing from inside the room. All they could do was wait.
…
Remus arrived at Severus’ quarters at six o’clock in the morning. Severus opened the door, but hardly looked at him before turning and running back toward the boys’ room. Remus’ eyes widened and he stepped in quickly, pulling the door closed behind him. Magic immediately pressed against him, through him. Gasping, he took off after Severus.
“What happened?” He demanded. Narcissa was staring at the door with a fanatical look in her eye. She didn’t answer. Severus ran his hand through his hair tiredly and told him all he knew. It wasn’t much. Remus nodded and stood with them, all three worried and trying to will the bedroom door to open.
Chapter Twelve
“It’s almost seven.” Remus spoke. Severus looked at him blankly. “Classes. Today’s Monday.”
Severus winced and said nothing. They continued waiting in silence. Suddenly, the magic popped and disappeared as if it had never been. Narcissa rushed through the door, the men right on her heels. The boys were sleeping. They looked peaceful and undisturbed, but then they got a better look. Their pajamas were too small for them. They looked bigger and heavier. Draco stirred and opened his gray eyes.
“Morning, Momma. Daddy. Moony.” He said as he stretched. He seemed to notice their tension and became serious. “Wha’s wrong?”
“How do you feel, Draco?” Severus asked curiously while Narcissa rushed forward, touching muttering over him.
“I’m fine.” He answered and scowled as he tried to push his mother away. “Baby! Wake up! They went crazy!”
Harry stirred and opened his eyes. He reached for his glasses and put them on. He blinked at them all nervously. “What? Did we do som’fin bad?”
“Course not, stupid.” Draco pushed him and then went back to trying to hold off his mother. “I’m fine, Momma!”
“How do you feel, Harry?” Narcissa turned to the boy, satisfied Draco was telling the truth. She reached out without thinking to check for a fever. Harry didn’t flinch away. Her eyes widened.
“M’fine.” Harry said softly, still nervous.
“Oh, Harry.” She smiled and wrapped him in her arms. “You trust me now?”
He nodded, “You not take Ray. He promise to stay wi’ve me, so I not ‘fraid of you no more.”
“Are you sure you’re alright?” Remus added his own hands as he ran them over the boy looking for wounds.
“Why? Somfin happen?” Draco demanded, looking to Severus for answers.
“There was a magical surge and we couldn’t get to you. We were worried.” He explained.
“Oh.” Draco looked to Harry, but the boy looked fine. A bit embarrassed, but nothing horrible. “We’re okay.”
“Good. Why don’t we have breakfast and then go to Madam Pomfrey just in case.” He decided. “Narcissa, I’ll meet you up there in thirty minutes, alright?”
“Yes, Severus.” She nodded.
“I’ll order breakfast.” Remus offered and followed the Slytherin from the room so that Narcissa could dress the boys. She had to charm their clothes larger to fit them.
Eventually, they finally made it to the infirmary. Harry was nervous with Madam Pomfrey so close to him and he began to suck on his thumb. He relaxed though when Severus strode through the doors and took up a position beside him. Draco lay next to him in the same bed. Pomfrey had tried to separate them, but Draco had refused. Narcissa was still shaking with relief that the boys were okay and couldn’t find the energy to argue with him. Remus watched everything from a few feet away.
“I have the results.” Pomfrey announced two hours after they had arrived. “But I’m not quite sure what to make of them. Why don’t you two come to my office? Remus can look after the boys.”
Severus looked questioningly down at the boy holding his hand. Harry smiled and nodded to show he was alright. Draco was already asking if Remus would give them horsey rides. He nodded and followed the two women into the office. Narcissa sat stiffly, tense with worry again. Severus just sat patiently, his face blank and waiting.
“There is nothing wrong with them physically.” Pomfrey began as she showed them the results of the tests she had run. “They are in perfect health. Their magic levels are a bit high for wizarding children of their age, but they could be at the same level they had been when they were originally this age, I don’t know. There is no residue or evidence that magic has been worked on them recently. There’s nothing.”
“So what happened?” Narcissa demanded. “They look different, at least.”
“Because they are different.” Pomfrey agreed. “Draco is now five years, seven months, and two days old. He’s four and a half inches taller and eight pounds heavier, now standing three feet and half an inch tall and weighing sixty and one half pounds. Harry is five years, one month, and sixteen days old. He’s three and a half inches taller and only five pounds heavier, now standing at two feet seven inches and weighing fifty four pounds. Draco is about average for his age, but Harry is slightly underweight for his height.”
“I see.” Severus said slowly. “So that seven hour magical storm aged them a year and seven days.”
“It did.”
“Do you think this will keep happening until they return to their true ages?” Narcissa asked hopefully.
“It would seem that way.” Severus nodded.
They didn’t have time to say anything else before Dumbledore opened the office door and stepped in. “Severus? I heard you got injured in your potions class and canceled the rest of the day? What’s happened?”
Severus reported what happened and the results of Madam Pomfrey’s tests. The woman exchanged a meaningful glance, but said nothing. They could hear Remus playing with the boys through the open doorway, and focused on that instead of the conversation before them.
“This is good news, my boy.” Dumbledore said with a bright smile. His age spotted hand came up to squeeze Severus’ shoulder encouragingly. The dark haired man said nothing. “I will take a peek at them.”
…
Remus was panting as he galloped around on his knees. Both Harry and Draco were on his back. Harry wouldn’t ride by himself, so he allowed Draco to ride with the smaller boy. He smiled as he heard Harry’s delighted laughs and Draco’s happy orders of faster, right, and left. He was so preoccupied that it was the boys who noticed their audience before he did.
Harry fell silent and Draco stilled. Remus glanced over to the door to see Severus, the headmaster, and the women. He sat up carefully, catching the boys in his arms. Harry didn’t look terrified as he normally would at the approach of a stranger. But his eyes were solemn and watchful.
“Mommy, I want to go swimming.” Draco said. He was undisturbed by all the attention.
“I will think about it.” Narcissa answered. The boy scowled and crossed his arms over his chest petulantly.
“Do you wish to go swimming too, young Harry?” Dumbledore asked taking a few steps toward them.
Harry nodded, but reached out to grasp Draco’s arm in a display of nervousness.
The blonde looked at the boy and patted his hand. “It’s okay. Daddy’s right there. He won’t let Dumbledore hurt you.”
Harry nodded and smiled shyly, but didn’t release his hold. Draco didn’t seem to mind too terribly. Dumbledore saw his chance and slowly lowered himself to the ground in front of Remus. Draco cocked his head curiously from his position in Remus’ lap, but Harry leaned back into the werewolf’s chest to put as much distance between him and the old man as he could.
“You know who I am, Draco?” Dumbledore asked with twinkling eyes.
“Course.” Draco said with a superior wave of his little hand.
“And you Harry? Do you remember who I am?” The little boy hesitated, but shook his head in a negative. “Ah, what do you remember?”
“I remember lots!” Draco interrupted, trying to get the attention of his friend. “I wanted to help, Baby, right? I did and that’s my job now.”
“Very good, Draco.” Severus and Narcissa came up to stand by the sitting headmaster. “And you Harry? What do you remember?”
The little boy turned thoughtful green eyes up to Severus and spoke softly, “I was with my mommy and other daddy, but they not come anymore cause they died. Then I was with my aunt and uncle and Dudley. We just started school. Now I’m with my new family. Did aunt and uncle die like my first family?”
“No, Harry.” Severus knelt and pulled Harry into his arms. The boy went willingly and happily wrapped his little arms around the Potion Master’s neck. “They were treating you badly. Children must be cared for and they didn’t care, so we are taking care of you.”
“Thank you.” Harry said and kissed the man’s cheek.
“Alright. Let’s get this over with.” Pomfrey interrupted with a huge smile. It was so nice to see young Severus lowering his guard, but if she didn’t interrupt then she was going to cry. “Harry, I’m going to give you vaccines. Why don’t you place him on the bed, Severus? Draco can sit next to him.”
Everyone did as she said. Then the witch had the boy drink the cure to the sickness while her wand on the vein in his arm spelled that sickness mildly into his veins. Dumbledore approached Narcissa with his thoughts since Severus was focused on the children at the moment.
“It seems Draco has access to all sixteen years of his memory and as he ages they become clearer.” He murmured.
“Yes.” Narcissa agreed. “But Harry only remembers his first five years with the Dursley’s and everything that has happened here since he was changed into a child for the second time.”
…
“Ron! Where are we going?” Hermione asked breathlessly. Ginny and Neville were running at her heels as Ron pulled her forward by her hand.
“You’ll see.” He told her. He wasn’t really willing to tell them he had Harry’s map, and therefore couldn’t tell them that he had seen Lord Ray Malfoy and Baby Potter suddenly appear in the infirmary.
…
Before anyone could discuss the boys’ memories further, the infirmary doors opened and four Gryffindors came in. Hermione and Ginny rushed forward while the boys froze as the headmaster and intimidating teacher looked at them.
“Oh, Harry! How are you feeling?” Hermione cried anxiously. The little boy was breathing fast. He was doing better with strangers, but this many all at once was becoming too much for him.
“Rub his back.” Severus ordered Remus before looking back into panicked green eyes. “Harry, I’m going to go talk to these people. I’ll be right back. You are safe with Draco and Remus.”
The boy nodded shakily, leaning into Draco’s side. The blonde was glaring at the intruding students. Narcissa smiled at him and walked over to offer her silent support. Severus nodded satisfied and grabbed the two girls by the arms. Dumbledore followed him herding the two Gryffindor boys behind them.
“What is the meaning of this?” Severus said icily.
“Professor, we understand you are in charge of Harry’s care, but we are his friends. We worry about him and you have not kept your promise to keep us informed of his progress and condition. We haven’t seen him in a week!” Hermione glared right back.
“As you can see, Harry is no longer himself at the moment. He doesn’t even remember you and it would not be for the best for you to be fluttering about.”
“I will give you weekly reports to his progress.” Dumbledore offered. “But until Harry returns to the age of eleven, he will not remember you.”
“When do you think that will be?” Ginny asked with a frown.
“We believe he will age a year every week. In about seven weeks, he will be eleven again.”
“Seven weeks!” Ron exclaimed, dismayed.
“It is better than having to wait seven years!” Severus snapped. “Now get out of here and mind your own business for once!”
“Harry is our business, sir.” Hermione answered evenly. “But we will leave. Don’t forget your promise, Headmaster.”
“I won’t, my dear.” Dumbledore smiled. The Gryffindors nodded and walked off.
Severus glared at their retreating backs before spinning to face his mentor, “Do you think that is wise?”
“They are his friends, Severus. He needs them as much as they need him.”
“At least I will have seven weeks free of their meddling.” Severus sighed and entered the infirmary with the headmaster on his heels.
…
After the boys were done at the infirmary, they all went back to Severus’ quarters. Harry was now fine with both Remus and Narcissa touching him, but still preferred his ‘daddy’. Remus took the boys to the playroom while Narcissa stayed in the sitting room to discuss the future.
Narcissa wanted her son to have tumbling classes like he did when he was truly five. It was good to build flexibility and agility, and was essential for a child to later be good a dueling. She didn’t want Draco to loose any of his physical skills over this disaster. Though she was very relieved that he would definitely not loose any of his memories. But Severus was adamant that they stay in his rooms for safety.
“They can’t stay here forever, Severus.” Narcissa said through narrowed eyes. “Draco is already requesting to go outside. You will cause them mental injury should you keep them in here always. Harry can’t have that. What if he grows to have a phobia of big places or of being outside?”
“Where do you suggest taking them?” Severus snapped.
“There is a place in France. I can floo there with the boys every afternoon for a few hours. No one will suspect anything. We will be safe.”
Severus didn’t answer, but Narcissa knew she had won and smiled softly as the man stalked from the room. Harry did develop a small fever from the vaccines, but it didn’t seem to affect him too greatly. Draco was worried, though, so he didn’t protest when Severus put them to bed early.
…
Harry woke from a dream of being punished at the Dursley’s. It was pitch black in the room and he was certain he was in his cupboard, certain that his dream of a caring family was over for good. He curled into a whimpering ball and hugged himself tightly, trying to stem the panic. He knew if he began to cry, he’d only get in more trouble. Draco woke to the sounds of ragged breathing. He groped sleepily for his baby, but couldn’t find him.
“Baby?” He asked as he sat up. A muffled sob was his only answer. “What’s wrong? Where is you?”
“R-r-ray?” Harry stuttered uncertainly.
“Yeah. What is it?” Draco asked as he crawled to the head of the bed where Harry’s voice had come from. He found the baby curled in a tight ball, shaking hard. His eyes got wide and he threw his arms around the smaller boy. Harry twisted and clung to him, hot tears burned Draco through his shirt.
“Why a-a-re you h-here in my cupboard?” Harry cried. “I’m s-s-sorry for getting you in trouble.”
“What cupboard?” Draco asked as he held tight. “We is not in trouble, Baby. Daddy and Mommy and Moony love us and tucked us in and kissed us goodnight. Don’t you remember?”
“Is a dream. That’s not really real, is it?”
“Of course it is.” Draco said firmly, petting the baby’s silky hair. “I’m still here. I told you. I won’t never leave you.”
“Ray.” Harry whispered breathily and cried for a minute more. “Do you… t-think you can t-t-turn on a light? I d-don’t like the dark.”
“Okay.” Draco gently released his hold and turned to the edge of the bed. He wondered why the bell hadn’t woken his mommy or daddy. Maybe it was broken. With a thump, he landed on the floor.
“Ray! Ray, are you okay?” Harry cried out frantically.
“Fine, Baby. Just trying to turn on the lights.” Draco assured him gently. “Is okay.”
“Come back. I’m so-sorry. Didn’t mean for you to g-go.” Harry cried, upset and frightened.
“Well, can’t come to you. I fell out of bed to look for lights. You’ll have to come to me.” Draco reasoned.
“O-o-okay.” Harry whimpered and began to crawl toward Ray’s voice. He was sure he’d hit the wall to the cupboard any moment, but he wanted Ray bad and was going to try even if it meant waking uncle by banging on the wall. With a startled scream, he fell of the edge and onto the hard ground.
“Baby! Are you alright!” Draco rushed over and frantically ran his blind hands up and down Harry’s body, trying to feel for blood.
“Y-yes.” Harry gasped as he grasped onto Draco’s shirt. He wasn’t ever letting go.
“Can you stand?” Draco asked sweetly, helping the little boy to his feet. “Let’s go look for a light.”
“I c-ca-can’t see nothing. How can we l-look?” Harry asked as he did as Draco said.
“Just hold onto me. I’ll find it.” Draco promised, patting the boy’s hair.
They never did find what Draco was looking for. In his room in the Manor, there had always been a small orb that, when he spoke orders into it, it controlled the lighting and temperature. But Narcissa hadn’t thought to make one for their room. And Draco was right in assuming the bell was broken from the powerful magic of their aging. Neither she nor Severus thought of it and made another yet. Eventually, the boys got tired of stumbling around blind and curled up together for warmth against a wall before falling back to sleep.
When Narcissa found them the next morning, she hugged and kissed them over and over in apology for not being there when they needed her. She fixed the bells and even made an orb for their bedroom and the playroom. Severus was equally upset and held Harry all through breakfast instead of letting him sit in a seat with a booster chair like Draco. Harry was very grateful for the comfort.
…
It was Friday and this was their fourth lesson at Nicolet’s Gymnastics. The lessons were three hours long and there were seventeen other five year olds in their class. Harry was the shyest and just copied Draco as best as he could. Draco was better at tumbling, jumps, and flips than Harry. But Harry was excellent at the balance beam.
Harry didn’t say anything while they were there, mostly because he was uncomfortable around strangers, but also because he didn’t know French. So Draco spoke for them both. The teachers thought it was cute. They quickly came to adore the shy brunette with gorgeous green eyes and the little blonde gentleman. The other children began to resent the new comers.
“Do you think you need a spot?” The tumbling teacher asked Harry sweetly when it came time for the brunette’s turn.
Harry looked up at her through his long lashes and bangs, while Draco answered for him in perfect French, “Yes, ma’am.”
The lady smiled and grasped his waist, helping Harry flip over backward. He smiled in thanks and ran back to the line. Draco was taking his turn and he waited patiently until he felt a hard tap at his shoulder. He turned to look and saw it was one of the bigger boys and a blonde girl. They didn’t look happy.
“Couldn’t do it on your own?” The boy laughed.
“You’re such a baby! You shouldn’t be in this class.” The girl said meanly. “You should be with the babies.”
Harry had no idea what they were saying, but looked where she was pointing and saw the toddlers learning to roll and summersault. He blushed. He knew he was no good and small. Did the teacher finally give up? He wasn’t strong like Ray. He looked back over to the kids in front of him and bit his lip. What if the teachers told the kids to tell him to go over there? Was that what they were saying?
“You’re so stupid! You can’t even talk!” The boy pushed Harry hard toward the toddlers.
Harry fell over and landed hard on his butt. Draco had just finished his turn and turned to go to the line when Harry had fallen. He ran over and shoved the boy hard, causing him to fall over too. The girl screamed and Harry stood quickly to stand at Draco’s back, one small hand clutching the blonde’s sleeve so he wouldn’t fight.
“Don’t ever touch Harry again!” Draco hissed as the teachers ran over.
“What happened here?” One of the ladies demanded.
“They were picking on Harry!” Draco said furiously. “I will not have it! I demand they be sent away!”
“I’m sure they are sorry.” The lady soothed. “Harry is fine. Let’s get back to class. No more talking or fighting!”
“You alright, Baby?” Draco asked in English turning to Harry.
The smaller boy nodded quickly, “They were saying som’fing. Am I suppose to go with the little kids?”
“No.” Draco wrapped his arms around him. “You suppose to stay with me.”
“Kay.” Harry smiled brightly and hugged his protector back.
The rest of the lesson went fine, but Draco still complained very loudly to his mother all the way back home. He wanted to go to a new school or at least kick the kids mean to Harry out of their class. Narcissa promised she’d look into it, but told Draco he was to behave while he was there. The blonde huffed, but settled down. Harry giggled at him and the blonde relaxed with a smile in response. Narcissa laughed at them both.
…
Severus sighed in contentment. Harry was in his lap chatting happily about his week at gymnastics and their morning school lessons with Remus. It was Saturday and Severus had never been so grateful for the weekend. He looked across the room to see Narcissa giving Draco lessons on how to walk and talk. They would only be weekend lessons until the boys turn six and then it would be daily. He was tempted to give Harry the same lessons, but shrugged. Draco needed them because he was Lord of a very large and predominate wizarding family. Harry would need different lessons. Severus wondered if it would be too soon to teach him to duel. His thoughts were shattered however as his scar began to burn. Harry instantly fell silent and whimpered, clutching his head. Draco ran over instantly.
“What’s wrong, Baby?” He asked sweetly, trying to pull Harry’s hands from his face.
“I have to go.” Severus stood quickly and handed Harry to Narcissa. “Give him a Dreamless Sleep potion.”
“Severus?” She asked worriedly, but the look on his face told her everything she needed to know. The Dark Lord was finally calling after nearly a month. She held tight to Harry as Severus flooed away without a word. She rushed over to the Potion Master’s lab and grabbed the potion. Harry was eerily silent now and reluctantly drank the potion she poured into his mouth.
“Momma.” Draco asked in a frightened little voice. “What’s happening? What’s wrong with Baby?”
“He’s sick, Dragon. Let’s put him in bed.”
Draco followed her to their bedroom and didn’t protest as he usually did over naps. He curled up around Harry protectively and his eyes closed tiredly. Narcissa watched them worriedly. Remus was beside her. He had been watching silently this whole time. The werewolf put a comforting hand on her shoulder. She was about to push him away when Harry began to scream. His little body convulsed and blood began to seep out of his lightening scar. He screamed again.
…
Severus returned home staggering. The Dark Lord had not been pleased that he had not found some way of contacting him with the news of Potter’s weakened condition. And he had been further unpleased that because he was Draco’s godfather, he had been unable to actively hurt the child when he had been de-aged. But he had been pleased that he had done his best to make sure he was in the traitorous bitch’s good graces so that when Draco returned to normal, Severus could act and bring him Lord Malfoy alive.
He felt nauseous and weak from all the Crucio’s he had suffered under and felt dread over what he had learned about the Dark Lord’s plan. He staggered over to his potion’s lab and downed the four that he needed. Feeling a bit steadier, he turned to go report to Albus when he spied a strained Narcissa in the doorway.
“Severus, come quick. It’s the boys.”
She needn’t say any more. He hurried after her to the children’s bedroom. Harry lay quiet in Remus’ arms, his body trembling from head to foot every few seconds. Dried blood coated his pale face. Draco lay in the bed, just waking up. He looked dazed and confused. Narcissa rushed over to him, telling Severus about Harry’s screaming and convulsing and how she couldn’t wake Draco no matter what she did. Severus listened as he ran diagnostic tests. He paled when he saw the results from Harry.
“He needs the four potions in the black cupboard. Bring them quickly.” He told her urgently. She nodded and rushed from the room.
“Daddy?” Draco asked weakly. “Are you okay? I dreamed you were hurt by a scary man.”
Severus went to his side quickly. “What did you dream, Draco?”
“The scary man stood in front of lots of people in black. Some were punished for being bad like you were. Are you okay? You screamed and screamed.” Draco was crying now, but was obviously trying to fight it. Severus swooped him up into his arms and soothed him. Promising he was alright. Draco calmed and continued to tell him about his dream. “The scary man said he had been sussessful?”
“Successful.” Severus corrected absently.
“Yeah. He had an army now. It had big ugly trolls and lots of giants and big cats and wolf-men in cages. There were so many, I couldn’t see them all. Then he rewarded some people in black and then it faded away and I was home again.” His eyes followed his mother as she came back into the room and began pouring the potions into the unconscious child’s throat. His gray eyes widened with panic. “Baby! What happened to him?”
“Your dream was real, Draco. You saw things that were really happening. So did Harry, I think. But Harry also felt the bad spells that the scary man, Voldemort, used to punish the men in black, the Death Eaters.”
“Oh no!” Draco wailed and squirmed until Severus stood and brought him within touching distance of the small brunette. “It hurt so bad!”
“We’re taking care of him, Dragon.” Narcissa soothed, taking Draco into her arms.
Severus reached for Harry and Remus reluctantly handed him over. Severus rocked the tiny body. “We need to take him to the infirmary.”
Narcissa nodded and carried Draco. Remus followed them both. Poppy threw a fit at the damage done to the small child from so many Crucio’s. She placed a dozen healing spells on the child and two more potions. Severus stayed until Dumbledore came and took him up to his office to report. It was there Severus learned that Harry always saw meetings through his connection to Voldemort. The man stared coldly at the man he had once seen as a second father.
“Then you don’t need me to spy.”
“I do.” Dumbledore answered gravely. “I’ve been trying to find a way to block the visions from the scar. Harry can’t let Voldemort have access to his mind.”
“You know damn well nothing will block a mental bond of that strength. The best we can do is teach Harry to limit the damage. He might in time be able to block the echoes of Voldemort’s curses, but he will always see the meetings. There is nothing we can do to stop that. Not even Occlumency will keep Voldemort out. But it may be able to protect his inner most mind. I will begin teaching him again. Occlumency and meditation to block out the curse echoes. I will no longer spy for you. Harry needs me.”
“You can’t!” Dumbledore said furiously. “We have no way to know if what Harry sees is true. Voldemort has sent false visions in the past.”
“I’m sure that once Harry learns the difference it will be very easy to see false from true. It is very hard to lie mind to mind, as you well know.”
“I have kept you out of Azkaban. You agreed to do as I asked in return.”
“And I have. For eighteen years, I’ve served you faithfully. You need Harry. Harry needs me.” Severus turned toward the door. “I’m doing what is best. You know that.”
Dumbledore sat dumbstruck, alone in his office. Things were getting out of hand. He had to do something!
…
Harry woke back in his own bed Sunday morning. Draco smiled at him and kissed his cheek. Harry blushed and hugged him. They talked softly of their shared dream. Draco remembered it more clearly since he hadn’t been distracted by pain, and explained to his baby that it had been real and all about the bad Voldemort and Death Eaters. Harry listened quietly and when Draco finished, he buried his head in the blonde’s chest. Draco held him and stroked his silky black hair.
“I’m scared.” Harry admitted tearfully.
Severus came the rest of the way into the room, having been watching all this from the doorway. He lifted both of the small children into his arms and held them. “I know you are scared. But I will teach you to deal with these dreams and I will protect you. You are safe.”
“I protect you too, Baby! I love you!” Draco promised, kissing the tear-wet cheek.
Harry cuddled up to him with a thankful smile. “Love you, Ray. Love you, Daddy.”
“Come.” Severus said thickly, tightening his hold. “Let’s get something to eat.”
Remus and Narcissa were already waiting at the breakfast table. Both asked the boys how they felt. Draco said he was fine, but his gray eyes kept returning to Harry worriedly. Harry smiled brightly and promised he was okay too. They talked of fun things while they ate. Afterward, Severus took the boys to his office and began teaching them Occlumency.
He didn’t touch their minds yet, but began teaching them how to focus on one thing until it fills up their mind so that they were no longer thinking. They didn’t get very far. Draco and Harry had the attention span of five year olds. The rest of the afternoon was spent and play. They also made the boys rest often. Tomorrow at midnight they’d grow a year and they’d need their strength.
Chapter Thirteen
Narcissa watched the two six year olds as they ran ahead of her. Remus was chasing after the children, playfully pouncing and tickling them. They were on their way back from the infirmary and Severus was teaching his classes otherwise he would have been there. He couldn’t afford to miss anymore days. Slytherins weren’t stupid and they needed to keep the boy’s presence in the castle secret a bit longer for their own safety.
“Momma!” Draco yelled as he turned and ran back to her.
She scolded him for his behavior. He was not behaving as Lord Malfoy should. They were in public (even though there was no one around, the castle hallways were considered public) and should act it. Draco waited with obvious impatience for her lecture to end and she straightened his long silky hair fondly. It fell past his shoulders now, and she could easily play with it now that Draco’s head reached her waist. Harry was still much smaller, standing five inches shorter and weighing ten pounds less than her son.
“We want to go play outside.” Draco said. “Let’s go shopping. We need new things.”
She looked past Draco to see Harry. The boy was looking at the ground shyly and twisting his shirt in his hands. She smiled and turned to look back at Draco, “Alright. We shall go shopping instead of having morning lessons. But you will not miss tumbling this afternoon. I’ve scheduled you an appointment at a new school.”
“Yes, Mother.” Draco said primly and went back to Remus and Harry.
She felt pride in her son and pain. He was growing up so fast. She was very grateful to have him as a child again and knew he needed to be returned to his rightful age, but couldn’t help enjoying every extra second of him being young and needing her again. Remus looked back at her with a knowing smile and she invited him along. He readily accepted.
…
Draco didn’t know what was wrong, but was determined to do something about it. There was a heaviness in his baby that had never been there before. And ever since they woke up that morning, Harry wouldn’t look at him or anyone in the eye. Draco was about ready to scream. He thought going out would make him feel better. It was always fun for him, but it seemed to make it worse instead. He just couldn’t understand.
They were standing in a huge toy store in Paris and all Harry could do was stand mutely. His mommy was worried as well, but Harry wouldn’t answer her. Moony had tried to get Harry to relax too, but his baby was having none of it. Eventually, Draco had enough and ordered the two adults to leave them. Mommy didn’t want to, Draco knew, but he stared her down as he had been taught and she finally went to the other side of the store with Moony.
“Baby, what’s the matter?” He asked gently, taking his best friend’s hand. “There’s lots of toys here. Come look with me.”
Harry nodded, but still wouldn’t look up or speak. Draco wrapped an arm around him and led him down the isles. He pointed out games, figurines, and stuffed animals. Harry would nod when he asked if he liked a certain thing, but whenever Draco tried to get him to take it, his baby would shake his head hard from side to side. Draco could feel his panic, so he would move on.
“Mommy. I’m ready to go.” He said stiffly.
“Are you sure, Draco? You haven’t picked anything out yet.” She asked with a worried frown.
“What’s the matter, cub?” Moony asked, on his knees in front of the small boy. Harry didn’t speak.
“Let’s go now.” Draco grabbed Harry’s hand and they left.
…
“What do you think is wrong with him?” Remus asked Severus when the Potions Master finally came down the corridor. He had been waiting patiently for the dark-haired man to finish dinner in the Great Hall. Narcissa had thought it was best if Severus was warned of Harry’s behavior before he came home for the night.
“I don’t know.” Severus frowned and thought back to what he had learned from the house from when Harry was six. “But it is most likely due to the Dursleys.”
…
Draco had enough. After they had dinner, he slipped from his chair and grabbed Harry’s hand. He practically dragged the boy off and he snapped at his mother to leave them. Narcissa’s eyes narrowed, but she didn’t protest. Draco led Harry to their bedroom and shut the door firmly behind him. Harry scooted away from him and began trembling, face still determinedly averted.
“What is wrong?” He demanded angrily, stomping his foot. “Why won’t you talk to me? Stop it this instant!”
“I’m sorry.” Harry whispered.
“Look at me!” Draco screamed and grabbed Harry by the shoulders. Harry looked up and his eyes were dark and filled with tears. Strangely, though Draco felt fear from the smaller boy, he also felt relief. “Stop that! You’re being stupid! I tried to make you feel better and you won’t be happy! Why aren’t you happy?”
“I’m bad.” Harry whispered. “I shouldn’t be here. I need to be punished ‘cause I ate too much and made you mad. I’m sorry, Ray. Don’t be mad. I’ll be better. I won’t get your things dirty or make a mess.”
Draco released Harry and looked at the smaller boy helplessly. What was Harry saying? It didn’t make sense at all. He felt tears burn his eyes and he ran from the room. Harry watched him leave and, though it hurt, knew that was what he deserved. He was bad and dirty and shouldn’t ever be happy cause that meant he needed more punishments and he didn’t want punishments, though he knew he needed them ‘cause he was bad and they were the only way he could get better. His confused thoughts broke as a large shadow loomed in the doorway. Harry looked up at his daddy in horror.
…
Severus watched Harry’s eyes fill with fear before the small child looked toward the ground. He stood absolutely still and stiff. Severus knew he was waiting for the blows he was sure to come. He came forward and dropped to his knees, starling the boy enough to make him meet his eyes once more.
“Harry, you are not at your aunt and uncle’s. You know that.”
“Yes.” Harry said uncertainly.
“You are here in my home with Draco and Ms. Malfoy and Moony. We are not the Dursley’s. Therefore we don’t think like them. Do you understand?”
“No, sir.” Harry admitted slowly and cringed.
Severus grabbed the boy’s face gently and tilted it up, “Exactly this. We care for you. You are not bad. You are not being punished. We want you to be happy because when you are not it makes us very upset. Draco is out there right now crying and throwing a tantrum because he doesn’t understand why you are doing this to yourself.”
Harry’s eyes widened and tears fell from them, “I’m sorry! I didn’t mean to!”
“Shhh, Harry.” Severus wrapped him in a tight embrace.
He just couldn’t look at the mentally twisted child before him. He felt sick thinking of what it took to make an innocent six year old believe so fully in their own worthlessness that they actually wanted punishments. He knew how confusing all this must be for Harry even with the last two weeks to teach him that he was safe and cared for.
“Why don’t we go out and see if we can make Draco feel better?”
“What do I do?” Harry sniffed, trembling.
“You are to be happy. Smile and play with him. Show him that you,” Severus hesitated, but there was only one word he could use, “... love him still.”
Harry nodded. They arrived in the living room to find a fuming Draco standing by the fireplace with his arms crossed over his chest and ignoring his mother completely. Remus was sitting on the couch, smiling sadly at the scene as Narcissa tried to talk reason and understanding into her son.
“Ray?” Harry said nervously as he went over to his friend. “I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to make you cry. I’m sorry, Ray. I’m better now.”
Draco turned around and eyed Harry suspiciously. Severus said nothing. Narcissa held her breath. She didn’t know what would happen to the damaged little brunette if Draco were to reject him now. But Draco didn’t. He pulled Harry into an angry hug. Harry returned it more gently.
“Don’t do that ever again!” Draco ordered, eyes bright. “I mean it, Baby.”
“’Kay.” Harry agreed easily. “I’ll be good.”
Draco nodded and turned to his mother, “We want desert.”
Narcissa frowned, “Ask nicely, Draco.”
“Please, order us desert, Mother.” Draco rolled his eyes as he said it. Harry looked horrified at such behavior.
“You will not get what you want from people if you make them not want to do it.” Narcissa lectured. “You are Lord Malfoy. You need to be proud, but arrogance will get you nowhere.”
“Yes, Mother. I know.” Draco insisted. “But you’re Mommy. I don’t haveta pretend with you.”
“You shouldn’t have to pretend to be nice. You should have to pretend to be arrogant.” Remus laughed.
“Are we getting desert or not?” Draco demanded, hands on hips.
“I’ll get it.” Harry offered hurriedly. Daddy had made it clear that it was his job to keep Draco happy.
“Sweetie, you don’t know how and Draco needs to understand this.” Narcissa turned her attention back to her son. “You are to respect me and when you talk to me like that you make it seem like you don’t. And if I do not have your respect, then you do not have mine. I do not have to do as you like. I only have to do what I like and right now that isn’t making you happy.”
“Here you go, Ray.” Harry offered the chocolate cake to his friend.
The adults stared in wonder. Harry hadn’t moved. He had stood there the whole time. So how did he get cake? Narcissa and Remus shared an awed, nervous glance. Severus stared at Harry and asked where he got it from. The boy looked confused and afraid. Draco slid their daddy a questioning glance, but Severus shook his head to keep him from interfering.
“Was I bad?” Harry fretted.
“No, Harry.” Severus assured calmly. “I was just wondering where you got the cake.”
“I don’t know.” The boy frowned and looked at the desert Draco was holding. “I just wanted Draco to be happy and thought hard on what he liked best and then I had it so I gave it to him. Is it wrong?”
“No.” Draco smiled sweetly and leaned over to kiss his cheek making Harry relax and smile back. “Is my favorite. Thank you, Baby.”
“Welcome.” Harry blushed happily.
Narcissa opened her mouth to tell Draco he couldn’t eat it because of his behavior, but Severus stopped her. The boys walked hand-in-hand to the kitchen talking about nothing really. Remus followed after taking in Narcissa’s dark expression and Severus’ blank one.
“Why did you stop me? Draco has to learn the difference between spoiled and proud behavior. The longer you wait to instill those values, the harder it becomes.”
“I am aware.” Severus conceded. “But he knows those values already. And Harry is confused. We best not make it worse.”
“Draco is just as important as Harry.” Narcissa snapped. “I will not allow my son to fall into damaging habits.”
“Harry needs to feel like he has worth, Narcissa. And if you had told him that it was wrong to do what he did you will only enforce his belief that he can do nothing right.”
“If Harry’s presence keeps me from disciplining my son, then perhaps we should leave.” She said evenly.
“Narcissa, don’t threaten me.” Severus answered, ice creeping into his voice.
“It is not a threat. I’ve come to believe it would be healthy for the boys to spend some time apart. Perhaps Remus can take care of Harry during the day while I take Draco to lessons. We’d be back by dinner.”
“Just a little more time, please, Narcissa.” Severus said coolly. “Let them adjust a few days to being six.”
“I shall see.” She answered and went to sit with her son.
…
Severus took the boys to the bathroom and rolled up his sleeves as they stripped. Harry had been much better since their confrontation in the sitting room an hour earlier. He was acting much as he had before aging to six years old. But now he was quiet and withdrawn again. Severus sighed and lifted Draco into the tub before reaching for Harry. He felt a slight tremor in the boy’s body and frowned.
Harry sat stiffly in the tub and Draco responded by sitting still and watching him carefully. Severus tried to act like he noticed none of this and began washing them. Draco submitted, but Harry began to shake more. Finally, he could ignore it no longer. “What is wrong, Harry?” He asked gently.
The boy shook his head. Draco frowned and looked to Severus worriedly, “He’s afraid. Very.”
Harry began to cry and stutter his apologies. Draco went to him and hugged him tight.
“There is nothing to be sorry for. It is alright to be afraid. But why are you afraid?” Severus asked casually, rinsing Draco’s hair very carefully. This was really difficult to do when the boys were sitting so close together.
“I don’t like the water.” Harry admitted shakily, clinging to Draco. “You can’t bree’ve in water.”
Severus froze as the implications of that statement came to him. Draco of course didn’t know what Harry’s words meant and innocently said, “Of course you can’t. That’s why you hold your breath. Right, Daddy?”
“That is true, Draco.” Severus agreed slowly and took Harry’s face in his hands. “I wouldn’t do that. You will not be pushed under. I promise. Now relax so I can rinse you off.”
“Why would you think Daddy would push you under?” Draco frowned. But Harry couldn’t answer. Draco still felt the fear and vulnerability coming to him from his baby and turned Harry’s face to him as he had seen their Daddy do. “I wouldn’t let you get hurt, Baby. I will protect you. Even from Daddy, I would.”
Harry launched himself toward Draco and began to cry. Draco looked panicked, but held him. Severus sighed and simply spelled soap from the boys. He wrapped them in the same large towel and held them close. “I told you, Harry. You are not bad here. The Dursley’s were wrong about you. They couldn’t see you the way we can. You don’t have to be afraid here. You can be happy here.”
“We love you, Baby.” Draco added. “Don’t be scared or sad no more.”
Harry held tighter and whispered to both of them, “Love you so much. Don’t want you to go away.”
“We’re not going anywhere.” Severus promised.
…
That night Harry woke to a nightmare. Draco woke too and ordered the control globe to turn the lights on. Harry was crying into his shoulder and Draco did his best to calm him. He was glad when their daddy and his mommy came in, woken by the alarm bells. Daddy came over and rubbed at his baby’s back and Draco just held tight, waiting for the fear and grief breaking his heart to ease.
“Harry, what’s the matter?” Severus asked gently. The boy just shook his mutely and burrowed more into Draco’s side.
“Harry, sweetie, are you alright?” Narcissa asked as she reached over and ran a pale hand through his hair. She saw Severus smirking at her from the corner of her eye and cast him a glare. The boy nodded under her hand, but still wouldn’t come out.
“Baby, tell us what you dreamed.” Draco begged. “Was it the scary man with red eyes again?”
“No.” Harry whispered, pulled out of his fear by Draco’s pleading voice. “I… I was back in my cupboard and… and Uncle was yelling that… that you weren’t coming back for me… that you n-n-never l-l-love me cause I’m a bad, filthy, f-f-freak and you were playing a j-j-joke on me making me think you l-l-love me.”
Severus pulled the sobbing child into his arms and stood, rocking him back and forth as if he were an infant. Draco was in his own mother’s arms. The two blondes were whispering to each other. Draco was asking in a pitiful whimper why Harry never believed him and Narcissa was doing her best to explain why Harry was hurting the way he was. She hadn’t wanted to mention the abuse, but knew she couldn’t hide it from her son any longer. It was tearing him up too much.
Unaware of any of this, Severus was again tirelessly repeating all the reassurances that Harry needed; “You are not ever going back to your aunt and uncle’s. I promise Harry. You are living with me now and Draco wouldn’t let anyone hurt you. He loves you. So does Moony. You are worthy of love. You make us happy when you’re happy. We would never get rid of you.”
“Even you?” Harry asked in a sleepy whisper.
“Especially me.” Severus admitted, tightening his arms around the fragile child. “Harry, I… I’m very happy to have you with me and I won’t leave you or let you leave. You’re stuck with me for a very long time.”
“Are you really my daddy? How come… how come you didn’t die in the car crash with mommy?” Harry’s green eyes looked up at Severus trustingly and he knew he had to be very careful on how he answered these questions.
“Harry, child, your parents didn’t die in a car crash. The Dursley’s lied about that as well. Tomorrow, while Draco is taking his lessons on politics and acting, Moony will take you aside and teach you all about James and Lily Potter, your parents. They are dead, but they loved you with all their heart and had no idea you were going to go live with the Dursley’s when they passed on.”
“Oh.” Harry’s eyes teared up and Severus could feel the boy pulling away from him. “So you aren’t my daddy.”
His throat tightened and he prayed he’d have the strength to say what Harry needed most. He cleared his throat and Harry looked up at him with wounded, sad eyes. “Just because your birth parents are gone does not mean that there is no one left to take care of you. You have a family who love you. Draco is in it and so is Moony. And I know Narcissa, Ms. Malfoy, cares very much about you too. And… and I would like to be in your family. I… would like to be your… second father… for as long as you will have me.”
“You want me? You want to be my daddy?” Harry asked with complete surprise.
“Yes.” Severus answered. He stood still, waiting to be rejected. Therefore he was shocked when Harry leaned up and wrapped his arms around his neck and began crying into his shoulder. “Harry?”
“Thank you for being my daddy.” Harry answered, still crying. “I was so afraid and alone. I wanted a daddy so bad. I love you, Daddy.”
Severus rocked the boy, “Never again will you be alone, Harry. That I swear.”
…
The next morning, both Draco and Harry were subdued. They were both tired and Draco was still trying to come to terms with everything his mother had told him that night. His gray eyes landed on the boy in his thoughts. He sensed fatigue and nervous excitement. It was better than the depression of the day before, but he missed the simple happiness only Harry could feel.
“Are you okay, Ray?” Harry asked softly. Usually he was the last to dress.
Draco shook his head, “Yeah. I’m fine, Baby.” And offered a large fake smile. Harry smiled back and hugged him, making Draco’s smile more real. But the blonde was bothered by something. How come Harry didn’t know he was faking? Couldn’t he feel him inside like Draco could?
“Are you boys ready now?” Narcissa asked. She thought the boys were old enough to gain a bit of independence and had them get dressed by themselves after she laid out their outfits for them. Draco nodded and Harry smiled shyly. She gave them both a good morning and knelt to straighten their clothes. “Draco, you’ll be coming with me in the sitting room for lessons. Harry will be going to the play room for his own studies.”
“What?” Draco stared at her in surprise. “Baby stays with me.”
“We’ll just be in another room, Dragon.” Narcissa said firmly. “You’ll see each other soon for lunch and then your tumbling lessons.”
The boys hadn’t enjoyed their new tumbling school in Germany. Draco couldn’t speak the language as well as he could English and French, and Harry had been behaving oddly. She hoped now that they had things straightened out a bit with Harry, they’d have fun. The teacher was a really nice man.
Draco glared mutinously, but the use of his nickname was enough to keep him silent. Harry began to fret at his anger, offering to skip going with Moony. Draco could feel that Harry wanted to go to Moony and learn about his parents, but he honestly would rather Draco be happy and was willing to give that up just to do that. Draco relaxed and grabbed Harry into a hug.
“I love you, Harry.” He said and kissed his cheek. “You go see Moony. I’ll see you for lunch and stupid tumbling lessons.”
Harry smiled sweetly and kissed Draco’s lips before running off to the playroom. Draco watched with happy eyes, but frowned. “He didn’t eat breakfast.”
“We’ll just make sure he eats a lot at lunch.” Narcissa laughed. “He’s obviously too distracted to eat now.”
“Fine.” Draco huffed and followed his mother into the kitchen.
…
Harry settled in Moony’s lap. The man had a white box at his feet and it was filled with pictures inside. He slowly lifted a picture from the top and gave it to Harry. A man and woman stood smiling in it and playing with a baby. It was him and his parents. Harry’s eyes filled with tears. The people here didn’t look at all like drunks or worthless freaks. They were beautiful and happy.
Remus began to tell Harry about his parents when they were in Hogwarts. He told him how James and Lily met and all about what was going on after he was born. He mentioned the war, but very vaguely. He only said “bad things were happening” and “a bad man was hurting lots of people”. More pictures were handed to the child every now and then and Harry listened with all his attention. Both were crying by the time Remus got to James and Lily’s death and again he softened it as much as he could.
Draco came into the room. He had told his mother he was getting them for lunch, but he knew that Harry was very sad and confused. He went to Moony’s side and after tugging on his sleeve was able to climb into his lap next to Harry. Harry stuttered the bare essentials and Draco held him as he cried. He wished Harry’s parents weren’t dead. If they hadn’t died, his baby would never have gone to his aunt and uncle’s to be hurt.
“Come on, boys.” Remus sniffed and wiped at his eyes. “I believe it is lunch time. And don’t worry Harry; we’ll talk about your parents every morning before we do your letters and lessons.”
Severus had left him in charge of Harry’s morning lessons since he couldn’t be there. Draco was learning acting, politics, family history, and current family business. He no longer needed lessons in reading, writing, or math because he was able to recall those skills from before the spell. Harry still needed to learn those and also to begin memorizing offense and defense spells. Severus hoped by seven or eight the boy would be ready to actually begin duel training.
The boys ate lunch and Narcissa flooed them to Germany. Draco still was disgruntled about not being able to understand or speak properly, but Harry was much happier and not bothered by the language gap. He was use to it from the tumbling lessons in France. So the blonde relaxed a bit and didn’t complain quite as much as he did the day before to his mother when they got home.
There was still an hour or so before dinner, so Draco drug Harry into the playroom. The boys were soon laughing and messing about. It was a relief from all the serious things from the day before and that morning to be able to play and act their age. By the time Narcissa came to collect them, they were sweaty, their clothes were torn, and their hair was in wild disarray. But she said nothing about that for both boys wore a wide happy grin.
Severus was pleased with Harry’s cheerfulness when he came down for the night. He and the boys played a bit and he gave them baths before tucking them in. Draco demanded a story and Harry was giggling by the end where the talking broomstick tried to get a job, too afraid of heights to do what he was meant to do and fly.
…
The days passed in this manner uneventfully. Narcissa was satisfied with the boys being separated for morning lessons that she didn’t take Draco away. The boys were learning fast and Harry’s third favorite thing was learning about his parents. His second favorite thing was their nighttime ritual with their daddy and, much to Draco’s delight, Harry’s first favorite thing was the blonde boy himself.
The small brunette had nightmares, but only twice woke up because of them. Draco was already awake both times and in his small high voice sung to Harry as he held him to make him feel better. Severus and Narcissa were woken by the bells, but wouldn’t come in unless the boys didn’t fall back to sleep within ten minutes or so. Neither time were they needed. Harry was well taken care of by his blonde friend.
The weekend came and the three adults planned an outing. The boys were clueless, so when Saturday morning came and Narcissa laid out for them warm travel clothes, Draco yelled in excitement and began bouncing around demanding to know where they were going and what they were going to do. Harry laughed at his antics and began pulling on the clothes.
“Now listen.” Narcissa said firmly after the boys inhaled breakfast. Severus and Remus were sitting at their placed around the table smiling at the children’s happiness. “Your daddy and I went to a lot of trouble to set this up. Don’t make us regret it. I mean it, Draco.”
“I’ll be good!” Draco promised and squirmed in his seat.
“You better.” She warned, pointing a long finger at him. “No running off with out one of us, no tantrums. You are to hold yourself with pride. You may have fun, but no screaming and you will listen to us when we talk to you.”
“Yes, Mother.” Draco promised solemnly.
“Yes, Miss Malfoy.” Harry echoed.
“Good. Come with me.” Severus reached for Harry’s hand and Draco grabbed Harry’s other. Narcissa and Remus followed them to the sitting room. Severus stopped in front of the floo and knelt. “Do not take these bracelets off. They will let us find you should we get separated, which we won’t.”
“Yes, Daddy.” Draco and Harry said together, admiring the silver medal rings that shrank to fit around their wrists snugly.
“Very good.” Severus ruffled Harry’s hair and squeezed Draco’s shoulder. The boy’s long blonde hair was in a tight braid and he knew both he and Narcissa would be angry if he messed it up. “I will go first with Harry. Draco, you’ll follow with your mother.”
He lifted the smaller boy and threw floo powder into the fire. A flash of green light and they were gone. Narcissa followed quickly with Draco and Remus came last. The five of them found themselves in a large round room. There was no furniture or windows, but sitting on the floor in the center was a small stack of papers. Still holding Harry, Severus bent and picked them up.
“We have thirty seconds.” He informed them and Narcissa and Remus placed their hands on the paper. Draco grinned at Harry from his mother’s arms and Harry giggled nervously in response, his eyes bright with excitement. Without warning, the paper activated and there was a firm tug in his stomach and the world swirled away.
They appeared in a very similar room, but this one had a door instead of a fireplace and a man standing guard beside it. The man looked over the papers and nodded to let them through saying, “Enjoy your trip, Mr. and Mrs. Thorpe. Mr. Gardener.”
Bright clear sunshine blinded them as they stepped out onto a street. Harry gapped in wonder and Draco grinned. Hundreds of brightly dressed people were walking up and down a wide lane with booths with multi-colored awnings lining the path on each side. Wandering musicians were playing up-beat traditional Greek songs and venders were shouting out prices and advertisements in many languages. The path was white, the sky an incredible blue, and the smell of the ocean mingled with the smell of pastries and fried foods.
“Welcome to Thessaloniki, Greece, and the International Trade Fair.” Moony laughed.
Draco wiggled and was placed on the ground. Severus put Harry beside him. The small boy was curious, but very frightened of the large crowd of strangers. Draco took his hand and pulled the boy with him. Harry smiled sweetly and put his thumb in his mouth, letting the blonde guide and protect him.
The stands had items of all kinds. Most were Greek in origin, but there were things from all around the world. They saw clothes, furniture, weapons, toys; anything you could ever imagine was being sold on that boardwalk. Draco and Harry stopped by the musicians often and watched the people who would stop and dance. Draco and Harry would join in and Draco would laugh at the attention they gathered. Everyone thought they were so adorable. Harry would turn bright red at the praise and would run off to Severus.
They ate pastries and crepes and roast meat. They bought kites and flew them on the beach. The water was so very blue and the sand sparkling white. The water was too cold to swim in that time of year, but the boys had fun nevertheless. They saw a Greek puppet show and it was fun to watch even without knowing what they were saying.
Draco bought dolls and puppets and toys. Harry asked for nothing, but accepted with a joyful smile a royal blue gypsy shawl with small gold coins on the edge from Severus. He wrapped it around his chest like a toga and it tinkled softly whenever Harry moved. Remus took tons of pictures and chased after the boys when they ran from sight to sight. Severus and Narcissa followed at a more stately pace, content and happy with the day.
By nightfall, the boys were exhausted. They returned to the room they had portkeyed into and returned to the room with the fireplace. Harry and Draco were asleep by the time they flooed into Severus’ quarters. Harry’s head rested on Severus’ shoulder, pink mouth slightly open, the blue shawl still jingled happily as he laid Harry out on his bed. Draco was placed beside him, snoring softly. With a few flicks of her wand, Narcissa removed their clothes and dressed them in their pajamas. Severus lovingly ran a hand through Harry’s hair and walked quietly from the room. Narcissa followed after lightly kissing them both.
They found Remus already asleep on the couch. Severus laughed. Chasing after two hyper six year olds would have worn anyone out and here was the proof. He was just glad the Wolf had been there; otherwise it would be him dropping from exhaustion. Narcissa smiled and came to Severus’ side. He was shocked when she placed a gentle kiss on his cheek and whispered goodnight. Yes. It had been a good week. He only hoped that the boys as seven year olds would be just as pleasant.
Chapter Fourteen
Harry woke and curled into a loose ball. Draco turned over and brushed his friend’s black hair off his face. Deep sadness and a lingering fear radiated from the smaller boy, but at least it was better than how Harry had been feeling lately. The heavy weight of self-hate had lightened considerably.
“Baby? Hey, what’s wrong?” Draco asked when he heard a quiet cry.
“I… I had a bad dream.” Harry answered. He turned in toward Draco and shook against the blonde’s chest.
“What was it about?” Draco asked softly.
“It was when… when I went to the hospital.” Harry turned his green eyes to Draco, begging the boy to understand. “I’ve never been to the doctors before… Aunt Petunia always made copies of Dudley’s records and just put my name on them… The school never really looked, they didn’t care…”
“That’s stupid!” Draco yelled indignantly.
Harry only shrugged, “It did matter, Ray. I wasn’t sick that often anyway… But… But I had to go to the doctor this time… U-u-uncle hit me before, but nothing like this… He’d never gotten so… so bad before… Ray, he almost k-k-killed me... I was so scared.”
Draco grabbed his friend in a tight hug. He felt rage. How dare anyone hurt his baby? He didn’t understand how this could have happened to him, but he made a solemn promise he wouldn’t let anything hurt his Harry ever again. He was pulled from his thoughts when Harry’s soft voice continued.
“I… I never really… thought about it before then… I just thought that’s how it was, that I deserved being punished and put in my cupboard, but after I got back from the hospital everything was different. I was terrified because… because I knew it didn’t matter what I did. U-u-uncle would always hate me and hurt me… It wasn’t fair… It didn’t seem….”
Harry fell silent and Draco guessed at the next word; “Right. It didn’t seem right that your Uncle, someone so much bigger than us, could hurt you like he did.”
“Yeah.” Harry sighed, burying his face into the blonde’s shoulder. “It didn’t seem right anymore.”
“It wasn’t right.” Draco said firmly, pulling the boy from him so he could look into his tear stained face. “It isn’t right to hurt you. You are not bad and they’re gone and never coming back. I’m here now.”
“Thank you, Ray.” Harry smiled and wiped at his cheeks. He knew his friend hated it when he was upset and crying.
“Come on. I’m hungry.” Draco smiled back and jumped out of bed.
…
Narcissa, Severus, and Remus sat at the breakfast table waiting for the boys. Narcissa had gone to check on them, but when she heard the serious conversation going on, she had backed off. The boys could dress without her anyway. They were old enough now. Severus raised an eyebrow when she entered without the two children, but she said nothing. Eventually Draco came into the room with a bright smile and loudly saying “good morning”. Harry followed and waved shyly.
“How did you sleep?” Remus asked as the boys got into chairs, no longer needing booster seats. Though Harry had to sit on his knees, he was too short to comfortably see over the table. None of the adults mentioned this.
“Fine.” Draco answered. His mother gave him a look and the blonde rolled his eyes before turning to the werewolf and saying with strict formality and false sweetness. “I slept well. Thank you. I hope the same can be said of you?”
Harry giggled and the blonde sniffed at him, putting his nose in the air. Narcissa frowned at this, but Remus cut in before she could say anything. “Really, Narcissa. He doesn’t need to be so proper with me. I had hoped we were becoming friends.”
“It is good practice.” She argued. “Manners are important. Especially for the Lord of the Malfoy family.”
“Yes. We know.” Draco said and there was a glint in his eyes that made Narcissa hold her peace for the rest of breakfast.
After they ate, Severus rose to go to class. Harry reached for him and he obediently lifted the child for a quick hug. Draco didn’t ask for the same, but he did smile sincerely and wish his Daddy a good day. Severus half-bowed and strode from the room. Remus just sat back and laughed at them all.
“Come on, boys. We need to go to the infirmary for another check up.” Narcissa stood and walked regally to the sitting room and the floo. It was deemed too dangerous now for the boys to wander through the halls (they could no longer trust the boys wouldn’t run off), so Severus’ fire had been hooked up to Madame Pomfrey’s. Harry and Draco followed her and Remus took up the rear.
Pomfrey hovered and fussed over the boys as she ran her tests. Draco sat stiffly, answering her with a regal politeness that did his mother proud. Harry sat, blushing nervously and hiding his face against Draco’s arm more often than not. Remus tried to calm him, but Harry wouldn’t relax. He just didn’t like strangers and his new memories of being in a hospital made him dislike the infirmary with a new passion.
“Well. They’re healthy as can be.” Pomfrey finally stepped away from the little boys. “Though Harry is still underweight and short for his age. He is 3 feet 1½ inches and weighs 62.5 pounds while Draco is 3 feet 6½ inches and weighs 73 pounds. Nothing’s wrong that I can see. Harry still has one more vaccine to go. Do you want me to give it to him now?”
“That will be fine.” Narcissa nodded.
Harry’s eyes got wide and he turned to Draco afraid. Draco frowned at the nurse and wrapped an arm around Harry’s shoulders, but he didn’t say anything when she lifted the smaller boy’s arm and began to chant a spell. Harry whimpered and began to cry. Pomfrey finished and handed the boy a potion to drink, promising that it was over. The boy swallowed quickly between tears and jumped from the bed, running back to her office and the fireplace there. Draco followed him to the nurse’s office letting his mother uphold the parting rituals.
“Do you want to play?” He asked Harry once Remus flooed them back to their Dad’s rooms.
“Okay.” Harry smiled.
“Beat you there!” Draco yelled and took off. Harry chased him with a laugh.
…
That afternoon they were taken to another new tumbling teacher who was also a martial artist. Narcissa hadn’t taken her son to such lessons the first time he was a child, but had wanted to. Lucius had forbidden it because it was too Muggle, but he wasn’t around to do so again. Draco was thrilled, but it quickly became apparent that Harry wasn’t happy.
“Alright, boys. Your mother paid for an extra hour of defense lessons.” The man smiled as the other children left them alone. “Copy me.”
Draco obeyed readily. He wanted to be able to protect Harry from bullies and learning to fight would be a great help. Harry mimicked their new teacher’s stance obediently, but wasn’t as excited as Draco. Fighting wasn’t something he saw as fun. After thirty minutes and learning how to block and dodge, their teacher began throwing slow-motion punches at Draco.
The blonde did as he was taught and was praised. It was Harry’s turn. He stood where Draco had and looked up at the man teaching them. The teacher smiled reassuringly and then his expression became one of concentration as he threw a blow. Harry’s eyes widened and he went stiff. His uncle was bearing down on him, face purple with rage, fits ready to hurt him. He dropped into a tight ball, whimpering. Draco ran to his side and the teacher backed off with surprise.
“Harry, it’s alright. You’re safe. No one will hurt you.” Draco promised, petting the smaller boy’s hair. It took a while, but Harry eventually uncurled and sat huddled in Draco’s embrace.
“You alright there, Harry?” Their teacher asked, dark eyes worried.
Harry nodded and blushed. How could he be so stupid? He knew his Uncle wasn’t here. Draco wouldn’t let anyone hurt him. He stood and nodded that he was ready to try again. But when the teacher tentatively made to slap him, again he had a flashback. He screamed and flung himself away.
Draco stood between the teacher and Harry, “We’re finished for today.” He ordered. “Thank you for your instruction.”
The man nodded and left them alone, taking up a position on the other side of the room. Satisfied, Draco knelt by Harry and tried to get him to come out of his defensive position. Harry wouldn’t do it. The waves of terror that rolled off of him were too powerful. Draco couldn’t get through to him.
“Shhh. It’s alright, Baby. I’m here.” He whispered as he curled around Harry protectively. “Come on. You’re alright. I made him go away. Come on, Baby, I know you can do it. Calm down. You’re safe.”
Harry, though still crying, relaxed and turned so that he was press up against Draco’s chest. The blonde held Harry close, the boy’s head right under his chin and just lay there until Harry stopped crying. They were just sitting up when Narcissa came into the room to pick them up. The boys said nothing as she gathered them up and said her thanks and goodbyes to their teacher. The man watched them with suspicious and pitying eyes, but said nothing of Harry’s fits to Draco’s mother.
“How did it go?” Narcissa asked once they were safe inside Severus’ sitting room.
“Harry can’t go to the fighting class.” Draco told her. “It scares him. He just drops into a ball when the teacher tries to show him a move. He’s afraid of being hit.”
“I will let Severus decide if he is to continue or not.” Narcissa answered. Harry was blushing with mortification at her son’s side and she tried to make him feel better. “Harry, it is not your fault that you are afraid.” The boy nodded mutely, but didn’t relax or meet her eyes. Draco stood with a demanding expression, hands on hips, but she couldn’t give what her son wanted and say Harry didn’t have to go. With a sigh she said, “You have an hour before dinner. Why don’t you go wash up?”
Draco didn’t answer at first, but eventually backed down. “Come on, Harry.”
Narcissa frowned, “I want you two to take separate baths. You’re too old to take one together.”
Harry’s head came up and he looked at her with confusion, surprise, and unhappiness. Draco just looked angry; “No we’re not.”
“Don’t argue with me, Draco.” Narcissa warned.
“We’re taking a bath.” Draco glared and tugged at Harry’s hand to get the boy moving.
“Draco Malfoy!”
“No!” Draco yelled at her and ran for the bathroom. Harry now looked afraid, but raced after his friend.
Narcissa took two quick long steps, but wasn’t fast enough. The bathroom door slammed and she couldn’t open it. She could feel her son’s magic on it. She sighed and knew she wasn’t getting in. She went away to think of a suitable punishment for his behavior. In the bathroom, Harry was looking at his friend with wild eyes.
“Why is she mad?” He asked breathlessly.
“I don’t know.” Draco shrugged carelessly, his movements stiff with anger still. “Come on. Let’s take a bath.”
“Why did she think we’re too old?” Harry questioned as he pulled off his clothes. The blonde was doing the same.
“I don’t know.” Draco repeated. “She’s just being stupid.”
“Ray!” Harry scolded. “That’s your Mommy. You shouldn’t say that.”
Draco ignored him and turned the facet to get hot water to fill the tub. “Come on. You can be the red ship.”
“Okay!” Harry smiled, argument forgotten. Draco’s body relaxed as he watched Harry get happily into the bath and garb the large red boat. He took up the blue and they began to play, steam and laughter filling the air.
…
“Narcissa…”
“Don’t, Severus.” She glared at him, already reading from his expression that he agreed with Draco about their baths. “They are seven now. They shouldn’t be bathing together. And they shouldn’t sleep together either. This is a critical time, for Harry as well. We need to encourage independence.”
Severus said nothing. Remus was standing silently by the fire while he and Narcissa sat on the couch. Dinner should be over, but the boys were still locked up in the bathroom playing. They could hear their laughter from here. He knew he had to be careful. Narcissa was already considering taking Draco away; he couldn’t keep opposing her views.
“Alright. They need to be more independent and modest.” Severus finally answered. “You told me Harry is not responding well with the martial arts lessons. That’s understandable. He’s skittish around strangers as it is, encouraging one to hit him might not be the best way to go. I agree he needs to be able to defend himself, however, so I purpose that after the tumbling lesson Remus will bring Harry back here to teach him self-defense. Draco will stay behind and take his defense lesson with their tumbling instructor. That will give the boys time apart and give Draco a chance to assert himself.”
“He will not bath with Harry.” Narcissa said, telling him that this wasn’t enough for her to back down from this point.
Severus sighed, “I will tell them they need to bath separately. But they will continue to sleep together.”
“Agreed.” Narcissa agreed. “I will see if the boys are ready for dinner.”
Remus waited for her to leave the room before coming to the Potion Master’s side. “Severus, I can’t take Harry. Tonight is the last night I can stay, remember? The full moon is in a week.”
Severus saw that the man was tired, but otherwise looked fine. There was no mistaking the sadness. If Remus held to the rule Severus had placed that he had to be gone the week before and after the moon, he’d miss Harry as an eight year old entirely. Now that he had come to know the man better, he realized that his demand might have been a bit extreme.
“You may stay until the day before the full moon and three days after.” Severus answered. “I will find someone else to watch over Harry the days you are not able to.”
“Thank you.” Remus said softly.
…
Draco was not a happy camper when Severus told him that he was not to bathe with Harry again. He wanted to protest, but Harry squeezed his hand under the table. He felt his baby’s insecurity and fear. Harry loved their Daddy, but was still unsure of Severus’ continued care. He didn’t want to push him. So Draco fell silent, but glared at the adults. He felt better when Severus told him that Harry wouldn’t be taking the fighting lessons, but was still unhappy with his mother when they went to bed that night.
The next morning Narcissa continued Draco’s lessons in politics, etiquette, and Malfoy family history. Harry took lessons with Remus. He learned different things every day. Some days Remus spent the few hours talking only about James, Lily, and Sirius. Others they focused on reading and math. Occasionally they even discussed magic theory. After lunch, Draco and Harry would floo to tumbling class. They stayed two hours and then Remus picked Harry up. An hour later, Draco was brought home by Narcissa. The boys would take separate baths, come to dinner, play with their Daddy for an hour or so, and were tucked into bed.
Severus was pleased with the way things were working out. Harry seemed more relaxed and his eyes less haunted. He was obviously still wounded in mind and spirit, but there was definite progress. As for Draco, he was the same as Severus remembered him being as a little boy. Maybe a little less selfish as he was always considering Harry, but that was an improvement in his opinion. Harry was getting better and compared to what his mindset could have been like without Draco, this was remarkable.
But Narcissa was not as satisfied. She didn’t like how much Harry consumed her son’s mind. Everything took second place to Harry’s needs, though she had to admit that Harry rarely asked for anything. And that was another thing that was bothering her. Harry rarely spoke. Draco spoke for him. Always saying “Harry wants… We want… Harry doesn’t like… We like…” and so on. She was glad that he seemed to have stopped calling the smaller boy Baby except for in private, but this joint will was not a good thing. It wasn’t healthy.
…
It was Thursday morning. Harry woke first and grinned. He pounced on his best friend and began tickling him mercilessly. Draco yelled with laughter and easily reversed their positions so that Harry was on the bottom being tickled. When neither could breathe, they stopped and sat up. Their hair was tangled and sticking up every which way. Harry laughed again as Draco tried to comb out his long hair with his fingers. The blonde stuck his tongue out playfully.
“Come on. I’m hungry.” Draco said happily as he jumped from the bed and went to the clothes cupboard.
Harry giggled, “Your Mom’s going to be so mad at your hair.”
“Then fix it.” Draco shrugged.
Harry obediently got up and went to his friend, running his hands through the white, silky strands. Magic swirled out from his fingers and as he brought his small hands down, Draco’s hair untangled and lay in a shimmering, smooth sheet down to the middle of his back. Draco smiled at him over his shoulder and handed him clothes. Harry put them on, not really caring what his best friend picked out for him and followed Draco to the kitchen.
“Good morning!” Draco shouted and ignored his mother’s frown. “We want toast with strawberry jam.”
“What do you want, Harry?” Narcissa asked, ignoring her son in turn.
“What Draco said is fine.” The small boy smiled and got quietly into his seat.
“I’m hungry, Mommy.” Draco whined impatiently.
Narcissa said nothing as she fixed the boys’ toast. Casual conversation went around the table until Severus rose to go to work. He lifted Harry into his arms and the boy hugged his neck tight. Severus smiled and put him back down, waving once at the blonde yelling for him to have a good day.
“Come, Draco.” Narcissa stood. “We have work to do.”
“Yes, Mother.” Draco kissed Harry’s cheek and followed his mother out of the room.
Harry turned to Remus and the werewolf easily lifted him into his arms, “What do you want to learn today?” He asked as he carried the green-eyed boy into the playroom.
…
“Where are you going?” Draco asked with a frown as his mother started a fire and got out floo powder. They usually had lessons on the couch. They only flooed to their tumbling lesson and it was too early for that.
“I’ve decided to have your lessons somewhere else. Come, Draco.” She answered and gestured once with a slender hand for him to come to her side. But Draco had a bad feeling about this and took a step back.
“Why? What about Harry?”
“I won’t ask again, Draconis.” Narcissa narrowed her eyes.
“What about Harry!” Draco demanded again, this time raising his voice.
“Stupefy.” She whispered and watched her son crumple to the ground. “I’m sorry, Dragon. But this must be done.” She lifted her young son into her arms and carried him to the floo. They disappeared together in a flash of green fire. Harry came running into the room, having felt something was horribly wrong when Draco was spelled unconscious. When he saw the empty room, he ran around screaming for Ray. Remus followed him and said nothing. When Harry had searched every room three times at least, he finally collapsed next to the fireplace, crying. Remus tried to hold him, but was shoved away hard.
“I want Ray!” Harry wailed miserably. “He promised! He PROMISED never to leave me!”
Remus sat helplessly and just waited. After four hours, Harry finally fell into an exhausted sleep and he was able to carry the boy to bed. Severus was not pleased when he got home. His black eyes flashed with fury and he stormed from the room to go in search of Narcissa, but her tracks were covered and he was not able to find even a clue as to their new location. He came back to his quarters a short while after everyone else had dinner empty-handed.
Harry was sitting by the fireplace with his knees drawn up to his chest and his dull green eyes staring into the fire. Severus felt his heart clench at the sight and silently made his way over to the boy. He sat down next to him, but Harry made no move or sound to recognize him. Severus sighed and draped an arm across Harry’s small shoulders.
“I’m sorry, Harry.” He said softly. “But Draco wouldn’t want to see you so upset. He’ll be back and until then we’ll have to look out for each other without him.”
“Why did she take him away?” Harry asked in a whisper. “Did I do something wrong? Didn’t she want Draco to be with me? Am I bad?”
“No, Harry.” Severus said fiercely, hating Narcissa in that moment. He pulled Harry into his lap and began to rock him. “You are not bad. It wasn’t because of you that she took Draco away. She wants Draco to be strong and a leader for his family. She thought he wasn’t learning enough here, but that had nothing to do with you.”
“Why doesn’t she like me? Why did my Uncle hate me?” Harry asked as tears poured down his cheeks. “What have I done wrong?”
“Harry, I told you it wasn’t you. Mrs. Malfoy does like you. She just made a mistake, that is all.” Severus promised. He tilted Harry’s face up to make sure the boy was listening. “As for your family, they hated you because of what you stood for. You were everything they could not be; beautiful, powerful, and special. That is why they were angry with you. They were jealous. Do you know what that means?”
“Yes.” Harry nodded, clutching to Severus’ shirt. His eyes betrayed his desperation to believe what Severus was saying and that Harry couldn’t quite do it. “I was sometimes jealous of Dudley. I just wanted to be noticed and l-loved like was. And Ray loves me, but he was taken away. I don’t want him to go, Daddy! I do anything, please! Please bring Ray back!”
“Harry, I’ll do everything I can, but I can’t find her.” Severus cradled the boy’s head to his shoulder as Harry wept. “But Draco isn’t the only one who cares. Remus and I are still here and we aren’t going anywhere.”
“Ray said that too.” Harry murmured sadly as he fell asleep.
“Damn you, Narcissa.” Severus said quietly as he looked down into Harry’s pale, drawn face. More than anything he wanted to ease the child’s pain, but he couldn’t. And he hated that feeling. “Damn you.”
…
“What is it, Weasley?” Vincent asked as Ron came into the dark, abandoned classroom. Greg was standing at his side.
“Malfoy’s gone.” Ron answered. “Since this morning. Harry and Malfoy usually leave in the afternoon for a few hours, but never separately. I thought he’d come back, but he hasn’t. I don’t think they will either. I think Dumbledore has finally separated the two.”
Vincent looked over the map and saw that Ron was telling the truth. Neither Narcissa nor Draco were in Severus’ rooms. Harry was sleeping alone in his bed. Greg shared a worried look with his best friend. Now that Draco wasn’t in Hogwarts they couldn’t watch him. It made them very nervous. What if something had gone wrong with his condition and that’s why he was moved out and away from The-Boy-Who-Lived.
“Why now? Why separate them now? Do you think something’s wrong with Draco?” Greg asked as he looked up at Ron.
“I don’t know.” Ron frowned. “It’s suspicious. I mean, they’ve been together for almost a month. Something must have changed for them to remove Malfoy.”
“Will you let us know if he comes back?” Vincent asked softly and smiled gratefully when Ron eventually nodded. “Thanks, Weasley. We really appreciate it.”
“No problem.” Ron muttered and left them.
…
“This is so frustrating!” Pansy growled as she set up the scrying bowl. “We don’t know what’s going on!”
“But what else can we do?” Greg asked. He was lighting the candles sitting in a circle on the floor around the bowl.
“Nothing.” Vincent answered. “Let’s just hope we can figure out where Draco is from the background of the picture.”
“Let’s do this.” Pansy got into position. The boys sat across from her as she began to say the activating spell.
The water in the bowl remained clear. But once Pansy fell silent, the surface began to ripple. They watched, eyes pinned to the water. Slowly the ripples stopped and in the water’s reflection that saw Draco. He was young, about seven. His eyes were closed and he was sleeping peacefully in a small room. The bed looked like a normal twin and the comforter was an expensive quilt.
Suddenly, the blonde’s face scrunched up. He looked uncomfortable, but that quickly became distress. The boy jerked away and looked frantically about the room, but it was empty. Pansy watched in horror as he best friend brought his knees to his chest and hugged himself, rocking on the bed as tears slid slowly down his pale cheeks.
…
Harry woke up screaming from a nightmare. His heart was racing and monsters lurked in the shadows of his room. It was too big. Things could get to him. He screamed again, seeing monsters with claws reaching for him. Severus burst into the room and ran to the terrified child. Harry thrashed in his arms, but eventually stilled when he recognized his Dad.
“It’s alright, Harry.” Severus promised, holding him. “It was just a dream. I’m here.”
“Daddy…” Harry whimpered. “…make them go away…”
“Who?” He asked, brushing Harry’s hair away from his sweaty face.
“The monsters.” Harry said pitifully. “Don’t let them hurt me.”
“I won’t.” Severus promised, cradling the crying child to his bare chest. His shoulder-length hair was tucked sloppily behind his ears. He carefully lifted Harry, knowing he wouldn’t be able to sleep in here, and carried him back to his room. The boy huddled in the black sheets of his king sized bed and curled up next to him when he lay down.
Harry eventually fell asleep, but woke once more from a nightmare that he couldn’t remember once he woke. Severus held him until he fell back asleep. He lay there, staring at his ceiling and wondered how it came to this. There was a child (the child of his enemy no less!) asleep at his side, in his bed. What was more unbelievable was his arm was draped over the child protectively and the only things in his mind were plots to return peace to his child’s mind and heart. He could hardly believe the possessive, protective feelings that were rising in him like a flood. Not even his Slytherins had made him feel the way he did now. What was he going to do?
…
It was the end of Friday. Ron, Hermione, Ginny, and Neville made their way to the headmaster’s office as they did every Friday to hear a report on Harry’s progress. Ron wasn’t surprised when Dumbledore didn’t mention Draco’s disappearance. In fact, Ron even suspected that Dumbledore didn’t know himself what had happened. And that made him mad. Harry should never have been left in Snape’s care! Who knew what else that Slytherin had done that the headmaster didn’t know about? But what could he do? If he came forward now, he’d have to explain why he hadn’t revealed he had the map earlier (not to mention explaining how he got it in the first place!), but Harry could be in trouble and he was the only one who knew enough to help him.
Ron lifted his head and got everyone’s attention, “Do you know about Malfoy, Professor? He’s not with Harry anymore. I just wanted to know why?”
Dumbledore looked over at the young Gryffindor, “How do you know this? I am unaware of Mr. Malfoy’s absence.”
“I have the Marauder’s Map, sir.” Ron admitted. “Malfoy hasn’t been in the castle since yesterday morning. He’s never been separated from Harry that long and I’m worried.”
“Ron!” Ginny cried, astonished. “Why didn’t you tell us?”
“You already knew where Harry was.” Ron countered with a glare. “I didn’t see the point of telling you I found the map.”
“And where did you find it, Mr. Weasley?” Dumbledore asked.
Ron went red, “I found a complex summoning spell in the library. I used it to call the map to me. I was as surprised as anyone when it actually worked.”
“Yes, well…” Dumbledore chuckled. “Greater need can strengthen a spell.”
“I can’t believe you didn’t tell us.” Hermione muttered, brown eyes hurt.
“We weren’t talking at the time, remember?” He snapped and Hermione fell silent. So did the others.
“Very well. I will inquire about Mr. Malfoy.” Dumbledore told them. “Come back tomorrow afternoon.”
“Thank you, Headmaster.” Neville said since none of the others looked like they would.
“You are welcome.” Dumbledore answered and shooed the students from the room.
…
Harry silently reached for Severus when the Potion Master entered his quarters. Severus lifted the child and Harry laid his head on his shoulder, ignoring the smell coming from his black robes. Remus stood in the doorway to the kitchen with sad, tired eyes. Severus gestured with his chin that he should come and sit on the couch.
“How was he today?”
“He hasn’t spoken once.” Remus answered. He took the seat across from Severus so the man could see him easily. Severus tightened his hold and Remus smiled.
“Has he eaten?”
“Yes, but not as much as he normally would. He did his lessons, but only would write out his answers. He let me take him to his tumbling lesson, but as soon as he was sure Draco wouldn’t show up, he wanted to come home. I brought him back and made excuses to his teacher.”
“That’s fine.” Severus looked down at Harry, but the boy had his face hidden against his neck. He rubbed soothing circles on his back, but tensed when the fire flared. Harry’s head shot up and he looked at it with bright, hoping eyes. He crumpled back against Severus’ chest again when he realized it was just Dumbledore.
“Severus, my boy, what has happened?” Dumbledore asked as he came to sit next to Remus. The werewolf made room for him easily, but said nothing.
“Narcissa has taken Draco. She didn’t feel he was learning enough in this environment, especially considering the duties he will have to take up soon as Lord of the Malfoy family.”
“I see.” Dumbledore’s eyes rested on the back of Harry’s head. “How is he taking it?”
“Poorly.” Severus answered evenly, but the hard glint in his eye told Dumbledore all he needed to know.
“Why didn’t you tell me sooner?”
“I was hoping she would be back by now. How did you come to hear of it? I was planning on coming to you once Harry was put to bed.”
“I have my ways.” Dumbledore twinkled at him with a smile. Severus grimaced at him and he quickly changed the subject. “I will help you in your search.”
“That may not be the best idea.” Severus answered reluctantly. “We don’t want to lead anyone to them.”
“I understand, my boy.” Dumbledore stood. “I hope you feel better soon, Harry. If any of you need anything, you know where to find me.”
…
Draco glared out the window to his room. He had dark circles under his eyes and he was hungry. He had slept poorly and when the sun finally came up, went in search of his mother. He knew what had happened. She had taken him away and he was furious. He could still feel Harry, but he instinctively knew his baby was very far away. His insides curled with dread at the feeling, but his mother wouldn’t listen.
He had screamed, demanded, ordered, and eventually begged to be taken back to his Dad and Harry, but his mother wouldn’t do it. So he had locked himself in his room, refusing to eat or do his lessons. Narcissa had let him saying he would only get to see Harry again when he did well in his classes.
He sighed again as he stared out into the night. He had no idea where he was. He only vaguely knew where Hogwarts was. There was no way he was getting back to Harry on his own. The only thing left was to do as his mother said and hope she would take him back. His eyes hardened. She would have to. He would act the perfect son and Lord and she would have to keep her promise, but he wouldn’t let her take him away again. He wouldn’t. Once he was back with Harry, he’d banish her. He’d never forgive her for what she had done.
He lifted a hand to his chest and his fingers curled tightly into the fabric, almost ripping it. Harry’s devastated pain ached right there and he would make it go away. He’d make Harry feel better again. “I’m coming, Baby. Just wait a little bit longer. I’m coming.” He promised and finally went to his bed. Tomorrow the games would start and he would beat his mother. Not even she would stop him from getting what he wanted. He was Lord Malfoy after all, and no one denies a Malfoy.
…
Saturday and Sunday passed slowly. Harry remained mute, but he smiled and played sedately with his Dad. Severus never left his side and every night allowed Harry to sleep with him. It didn’t stop the boy’s nightmares, but it did soften their effects once he woke. Remus wasn’t there to help; he left on Friday to prepare for the full moon on Saturday night, and wouldn’t be back until Monday. But that was okay; Harry only wanted his Dad.
Draco was having an even harder time of it since he had no one to comfort him or confide in. He acted sullen, but willing to his mother’s wishes. He was obedient, cold, and polite. He excelled as his work, driving himself to accomplish everything perfectly even though he was tired and angry. He woke every night when Harry did and it took all his control to hide how he really felt about his mother, but he did it. He could see his mother’s approval and pride growing. He hoped he wouldn’t have to wait much longer.
…
Midnight slowly approached and Severus watched Harry worriedly. What was going to happen when the boys aged a year and were separated? He couldn’t believe Narcissa was risking this. Draco could be hurt as much as Harry from this. His hands roamed until he felt the shape of the potions he had hidden in his pockets. There were a variety there, but he wanted to be sure he had everything Harry might need if there were problems.
The clock began to chime and Harry arched off the bed, his body rigid. That was all Severus saw before he was thrown across the room and slammed into a wall. He collapsed unconscious. Draco mirrored Harry, hundreds of miles away. Magic whipped around them, filled their rooms as a year was returned to their bodies and minds.
Chapter Fifteen
Severus was pulled from unconsciousness to the sound of weak, pained whimpers. He pulled himself upright and staggered to the bed. Harry was lying prone. His eyes were open and drenched with tears. His body spasmed as he watched and another whimper escaped. Severus rushed to the boy’s side and gently touched his head. Harry cried out at the contact; everything hurt!
“It’ll be alright, Harry.” Severus promised. “I’ll be right back. I’m going to get you potions to make you feel better.”
He turned and ran from the room. He knew what was wrong. Without Draco there, the transformation was less smooth, causing muscle strain and cramps as Harry’s body was forced to age at a rapid pace. Luckily he had potions on hand to help with that. He opened his cupboard and found the vials he needed and hurried back to his suffering child.
“Here, Harry. Take these.”
The boy was crying and gasping, but manage to open his mouth. Severus poured the potions in and helped him swallow by rubbing gently at the clenched throat. As soon as the potions were ingested, Harry relaxed and let out a pained sigh. Severus stroked his hair and murmured softly that it was alright, that it was over.
It took a good fifteen minutes before Harry felt well enough to lift his arms, asking to be held. Severus complied instantly and scooped him up. Harry lay his head down on his shoulder and wrapped his arms around his Dad’s neck and his legs around Severus’ waist. “Let’s get you to Madam Pomfrey.” Severus said and strode from the room. He knew the floo would aggravate Harry’s still aching body, so he entered the castle corridors. Harry didn’t speak, but at least he had stopped crying.
“You’re late.” Pomfrey scolded when Severus entered the Hospital Wing.
“He had a hard time of it.” Severus told her.
She nodded knowingly and gestured for Severus to lay the boy out on the bed. He did so, but Harry wouldn’t release his hand. The boy clutched at it and hid his face against his Dad’s forearm. Pomfrey talked softly so as not to frighten the boy more and quickly ran her tests. She tisked at the damage she found and began to cast healing charms to finish the job the potions had started.
“There.” She said with satisfaction a good half hour later. “He should feel good as new, though I am still worried about his weight and height. He’s still well below average. He’s only grown two inches and is only two and a half pounds heavier.”
“If he’s mimicking his growth and weight of when he was this age there may be nothing we can do about it.” Severus said as he picked Harry up again. “Are you feeling better, Harry?”
The boy nodded, his wild black hair tickling Severus’ neck.
“Tell Madam Pomfrey thank you.” He ordered.
Harry lifted his head and waved with a shy smile. Pomfrey accepted the gesture as enough, “You’re quite welcome, Harry. If you need anything else, don’t be afraid to come to me. Now here’s your treat for being such a good boy.”
Harry accepted the chocolate, but didn’t eat it. Severus inclined his head and went to her office to floo back to his rooms. Remus was lying on the couch and looked much worse for wear. The werewolf smiled at them, though his eyes were shadowed with pain. Harry gasped and wiggled until Severus put him down. The boy immediately ran over to the werewolf’s side.
“You’re hurt.” Harry said softly, eyes bright behind his glasses with worry.
“Your dad will patch me up.” Remus assured the boy and ruffled his hair.
“Why don’t you order us breakfast, Harry, while I tend to Remus?”
Harry nodded and ran to the kitchen. Severus went to his lab and returned shortly with several potions, all of which Remus drank quickly while Severus told him about Harry’s morning. Remus put the last vial down and his eyes were cloudy with concern. “Draco must have gone through the same. Do you think Narcissa…”
“She would get him medical attention.” Severus brushed off that worry. “But we need to find them.”
Remus nodded and made to get up, but fell back limply. His amber eyes fell on the Potion Master full of suspicion. Severus smiled darkly, “Yes, you just ingested a mild sleeping draught. You will feel better when you wake.” Remus growled, but was asleep before he could say anything.
“Dad, breakfast is ready.” Harry said from the doorway. Severus nodded and went to eat.
They were halfway through the meal before Harry spoke again. “If Moony is sleeping, who will watch me?”
“You are eight years old now. I’m sure you will be fine on your own for a couple hours. Remus will wake before lunch.”
“Okay.” Harry smiled gratefully at not being given to a stranger.
“If you need anything, you know how to use the floo. Just call ‘Potions classroom’.”
“Yes, Dad.”
Severus swished his wand and summoned books to him. They were introductions to the four main subjects Hogwarts offered: Potions, Defense, Charms, and Transfiguration. “Start studying these while you wait for Remus.”
“I will.” Harry promised and took the books. “Have a good day.”
Severus nodded and stood. He was just at the door when Harry’s voice came to him. It was small and very sad. “Dad, when will Ray come back?”
“I don’t know. We’re still looking for him.” Severus said and left him with the sleeping Wolf.
…
Harry studied the books by the fireplace. He didn’t want to leave it in case Ray came back. Remus slept for hours and Harry got hungry so he went to the kitchen and ordered lunch. Ray had taught him that if you stood in the kitchen and called for an elf one would appear. He did so and placed his order. He sat silently at the table alone, his eyes staring at the chair Ray would have sat in.
A huge ache rose in his chest. Ray had promised to stay with him and never leave. Harry knew it wasn’t Ray’s fault that he was stolen away by Mrs. Malfoy. Mrs. Malfoy took him away because Harry was a worthless freak. The voices of the Dursleys rose in his mind, taunting and teasing him. His new Dad told him that he was good, but what if he was wrong? What if he just hasn’t seen the badness in him yet? Maybe Mrs. Malfoy had finally seen it.
The food appeared and Harry ate half of it mechanically. He understood now. Yes, he finally got it. He was a worthless freak and he didn’t deserve to be loved. Ray was taken away for his own good. And his Dad would leave too once he saw the truth. He’d be alone again. Maybe even sent back to the Dursleys where he belonged, where he would be punished.
Harry shook his head as tears spilled down his pale face. He didn’t want to believe it, but couldn’t pretend any longer. He shoved out of his chair and ran into his room to hide under the bed. He cried silently wishing his Dad would get it over with and send him away, wishing he’d come home and reassure him. He was so confused, it hurt!
…
Draco screamed and threw the glass orb by his bed against the wall. It shattered. He clutched at his chest and clenched his eyes shut to push away the tears. Harry needed him! He could feel it! And his mother wouldn’t take him back until he learned all his lessons perfectly! He strode to the book shelf and grabbed the books there. He had to hurry up!
“Hold on, Baby. I’m coming back. I promise I’m coming back.” He whispered and began to memorize the books on his family history and politics.
…
Severus came back to his quarters after dinner and frowned when he saw Remus still asleep on the couch. “Harry!” He called, but got no answer. Heart in his throat, he hurried through the kitchen and into the playroom. Harry wasn’t there. He ran to the bedroom next, but again he couldn’t find the eight year old. He checked every room and still no sign of the boy.
“Severus?” Remus asked groggily, woken by Severus rushing toward the fire.
“How long have you been asleep?” The Potions Master demanded, spinning around to face him.
“I don’t know.” Remus frowned. “What’s wrong?”
“I can’t find Harry.”
“What!” Remus jumped to his feet and took a few sniffs of the air. Severus sneered at him in disgust, but he ignored it. “He’s here.”
Severus followed the werewolf silently and frowned when he led him to the boys’ bedroom. “I already looked in there.” He snapped impatiently.
Remus opened the door and walked in. He sniffed once and then got on his hands and knees, “Harry? Come out.”
The boy crawled out reluctantly and stood before them, head bowed submissively. Severus felt his anger drain away when he saw the posture. Something had happened to erase most of the progress they had made with Harry. He knew it had to be due mostly to Draco’s absence, but Harry had been coping better than this when he left this morning to teach class.
“Harry? Why didn’t you come out when I called?” He asked softly.
Harry shook his head mutely.
“What’s the matter, pup? Are you hurt?” Remus reached out to him and Harry flinched back. Remus pulled back his hand sorrowfully.
“Have you eaten?” Severus asked, testing the child. His suspicions were proven correct when Harry remained silent. “Harry…” He knelt and reached slowly for the boy. Green eyes met his and filled with tears as Harry was pulled forward into a hug. The boy clung to Severus, but still would not speak. “It’s alright. You don’t have to talk if you don’t want to. Come. Let’s all eat together.”
…
Narcissa came into her son’s room to tuck him in. Draco was sitting on his bed with books all around him. She sighed. She had been scared to death when he woke up that morning in severe pain. Not even the healer’s reassurance that he was fine made her feel better so she canceled all her son’s lessons for the day so he could rest. She had not been happy to find him studying intently and he still hadn’t stopped. At least he was eating.
“Yes, Mother?” Draco asked, his face blank.
She sighed. Draco had been absolutely polite to her since she had taken him away. He followed all the pureblood etiquettes to the letter and that hurt. She missed his smiles; missed seeing his eyes heat up with love and temper. She wanted her son to forgive her, but that was not going to happen anytime soon. But she didn’t regret what she had done. She would do whatever was necessary to protect her son. And allowing him to have an unhealthy attachment and obsession for the boy who lived was definitely unacceptable.
“Mother?” Draco said again, impatience creeping into his voice.
“It’s time for bed, Draco.” She said evenly.
He nodded once, “As soon as I finish this, I will go to bed.”
“Now.” She said firmly.
“No.” He answered casually and turned his eyes back to the book. “If that is all?”
“Yes, Draco. That is all.” Narcissa said tiredly and left her only son to his studies.
…
Three days passed and Harry never spoke a word and flinched when anyone touched him. Severus and Remus did all they could to help the boy, but without knowing what was wrong it was impossible. Severus was so desperate he resorted to trying Legimency, but Harry’s powerful magic ejected him immediately. The boy seemed to have been unconscious of the mental invasion and Severus was glad for that. He didn’t think he could stand Harry pulling even more away from him.
Draco was having a hard time as well. It took all his strength to focus when Harry’s pain was constantly washing over him, but he remained cold and got his work done. Narcissa was falling into despair as her son’s anger refused to shrink. Eventually, she had no choice but to keep her promise. Draco had done all his lessons perfectly and was much further ahead than when he had been eight the first time. Narcissa surrendered and told Draco she’d take him to visit his Dad and Harry tomorrow.
…
Harry was eating breakfast when he heard the fire flare in the next room. He dropped his fork and ran. He had just entered the sitting room when Draco crashed into him, laughing. They fell to the floor in a tangle of legs. Harry was shocked as he felt his best friend holding him tight. He could hardly breathe and it had nothing to do with the arms wrapped around him. He was happy, confused, and sad. He loved Draco and really missed him. But he knew he didn’t deserve to be happy and that Draco would only leave him again.
“Don’t cry, Baby.” Draco soothed as he sat, pulling Harry against his chest. He rocked the smaller boy slowly. “I’m here now.”
Harry lifted his head from Draco shoulder, feeling guilty at how much he wanted the blonde to stay with him. He looked up at Mrs. Malfoy, he knew she had seen the truth about him. The displeasure on her face as she looked back confirmed it. She didn’t want her son tainted.
“Mother. Why don’t you go and talk with Moony?” Draco asked in a cold voice.
“Yes.” Remus shook himself from his shock. “Boys, why don’t you go play in the playroom?”
Draco nodded reluctantly. He had a plan and in order for it to work he had to be alone in the sitting room. Well, he figured he’d just have to be patient. “Come on, Harry.”
He stood and tugged Harry after him by the hand. The smaller boy followed with his head bowed submissively. They entered the play room and Draco spun around to grab Harry by the shoulders.
“Baby, look at me.” Harry didn’t so he took his hands from his shoulders and placed them gently on Harry’s jaw, lifting his face. “I didn’t want to leave you. Mother, took me away. She tricked me. But I’m back now and I won’t ever leave again. I’ll make sure of it.”
“You should go.” Harry said hoarsely. It had been days since he had spoken. His green eyes were filled with a deep sorrow and Draco’s breathing got tight as he felt his friend’s pain. “You shouldn’t be around me, Ray. You’re mother’s right.”
“Harry… Baby…” Draco stared at the tearful emerald pools before him and he fought against his own tears. “I love you. We’re best friends. Being away from you isn’t good at all. It makes me sad and it hurts really bad. Do you really want me to hurt? Don’t you like me with you anymore? I said I was sorry.”
“No!” Harry threw his arms around the blonde and began to cry. “No, Ray! That’s not it at all! There’s something wrong with me and if you stay you’ll only go bad too. Everyone leaves me, Ray. My parents and then the Dursleys and then you. It’s how it should be. I don’t deserve to be happy.”
“That’s not true at all!” Draco pulled away and shoved Harry to the ground. His eyes were bright with rage. “I thought you realized that the Dursleys were a bunch of big, fat liars! That they hurt you no matter what you did and it wasn’t right!”
“I don’t know.” Harry shook his head helplessly. “It’s not fair that they punish me even if I do what they ask, but… But maybe they don’t need a reason. Maybe I need to be punished because… because I’m bad. Not cause of what I do, but what… what I am.”
“That’s stupid, Harry!” Draco spat. “You’re smarter than that!” His anger drained away as Harry curled into a ball and began to cry. He felt confusion and hopeless pain. He hadn’t meant to hurt Harry more. He knelt and pulled Harry back into a gentle hug. “I’m sorry I left you. That was wrong. I won’t let it happen again, okay? We’ll make this better together.”
“I love you, Ray.” Harry smiled and held back tight. “I missed you so much.”
“I missed you too.” Draco grinned. “Now let’s play!”
Harry smiled and followed his friend to the toy chest.
…
Severus stepped into his rooms with a cold, blank face. He had been struck speechless when Remus fire-called him to tell him Narcissa had returned with Draco. He had dismissed his class and walked back to his rooms to give himself time to think. As much as he wanted to lash out at the woman and bruise her face, he needed to make sure she stayed.
“Severus.” Remus said solemnly as he entered. He was sitting on the couch next to Narcissa, who didn’t so much as incline her head at his appearance.
“Remus.” Severus answered coolly and turned hard eyes on his friend. “Narcissa.”
“Harry and Draco are playing in their playroom. Maybe I should go check on them?” Remus offered.
“Yes. Please do.” Severus smiled silkily.
Remus needed no further encouragement and hurried from the room. Severus stared at Narcissa. The woman stared back. Neither spoke for several long minutes. Severus broke their eye contact first and went to the cabinet where he had brandy and glasses. He poured two and took them over to his friend. Narcissa accepted the drink, but didn’t lift it to her lips. Severus smirked; was she afraid he’d poison her?
“How are Draco’s lessons progressing?” He asked casually.
“Very well.” Narcissa answered easily.
“I am glad.” He took a sip. “May I ask why you left with your son?”
“You know why.” Narcissa glared icily. “He’s obsessed with that boy. It’s unhealthy and he was going into habits that are unbecoming of the Lord Malfoy.”
“And he has improved?” Severus asked with a sneer. Narcissa said nothing and that told him he was right in believing Draco had not gotten better by isolating him from Harry. The sound of Draco chatting happily and Harry’s giggles reached their ears. Remus shouted breakfast orders and the sound of utensils on plates interrupted the happy conversation. “Would you care to join them?” Severus asked the woman across from him.
“No.” Narcissa said shortly and took a large mouthful of her drink. She knew that if she went to sit with them, the happy atmosphere would disappear.
“Narcissa…” Severus began.
“No, Severus.” She set the drink down hard. “It is difficult for him. And that is my fault. I shouldn’t have let you talk me into allowing Draco to stay. That boy in there is bending my sons mind, turning him into a slave. I won’t change my mind. He may stay the night, we will leave tomorrow morning.”
“Narcissa, you’re being stupid.” Severus said in a soft tone. “Draco is not a slave. Nor does he think like one. Nothing has changed in your son except that he cares deeply for his friend. That kind of care is not a weakness, but a strength.”
“It’s a vulnerability.” She snapped.
“They need each other. They support each other.” Severus corrected.
“Not true.” She smiled grimly. “Harry needs Draco, not the other way around. Harry does nothing, but distracts and weakens Draco. For my son, the world revolves around that boy. It’s wrong, Severus. I won’t allow my son to be used or tamed. And that’s what you’ve done. He will come to accept Harry’s absence in his life. It will just take time.”
“You are making a mistake and destroying both of those boys.” Severus spat hatefully. “I never thought you unintelligent and willfully blind, Narcissa. Open your eyes.”
“They are open.” She said coldly. “I see what you are doing, my old friend.”
“What’s that?” He snapped.
“You are sacrificing my son for Harry. And while I can understand the strength of the love a parent has for their child, I won’t allow you to break Draco just so Harry survives. Horrible things happened to him. It shouldn’t have, but we can’t change the past. Harry’s dead, Severus. You are just prolonging his death and hurting yourself in the process. I won’t allow Draco to be pulled under as well.”
“Get out.” Severus stood. Darkness seemed to roll off of him in his rage. “Now, Narcissa.”
“No. I will not leave my son.” She answered calmly. “If you truly wish me gone, I will take Draco with me. You don’t want to cut Harry’s visit with his friend short, do you?”
Their glasses exploded and the spy for Voldemort said in a voice that sent terror running through her, “You will regret this.” He turned and strode from his quarters, slamming the door behind him. Narcissa took a shaky breath and folded her cold hands in her lap. She knew she had gone too far by predicting Harry’s death, but it was the truth.
The boy was raped. Her eyes closed in horror at the mere thought. She wasn’t unsympathetic, but there was nothing she or anyone else could do. There was no recovering from such violation or torment. Harry’s life had been taken and if she didn’t do something Draco would die along side of the Boy-Who-Once-Lived.
…
“Dad!” Draco yelled and ran to Severus who just walked into the kitchen.
Severus placed his hands around the boy’s shoulders and pressed him to his chest. The boy’s head was about four or five inches above his waist, much taller than Harry. “Hello, Draco.”
“What are we having for dinner?” He grinned up at the man. “Something special to celebrate my return?”
“Of course.” Severus sniffed and pushed the boy back to his seat by Harry. “I’ve already had a word with the elves.”
Draco laughed and Harry’s lips turned up into a soft smile. Severus felt relief and happiness rush through him at the expression on the smaller boy. It had been too long since Harry looked so relaxed and cheerful. He looked to Narcissa to see if this improvement in both boys would soften her decision, but she sitting silently by Remus, ignoring everyone around her as much as they were ignoring her.
Severus took his seat and listened to the boys talk happily about some game Draco made. Harry’s voice was returned to them and Severus felt himself harden with resolve. He couldn’t let Narcissa take her son away. Remus caught his gaze and told him he agreed and would help. Severus nodded once.
…
“You ready?” Draco whispered.
“Yeah.” Harry answered squinting hard at the orb by their bed. “I think so.”
It had been his job to make sure the alarms on their room to tell Severus and Narcissa if they were awake were no longer working. Harry had been reading into magical theory, but had not practical experience to draw from. He just hoped wishing really hard, like he had to get Draco desert, would work. The blonde nodded at him and opened their door. The hall was silent. Everyone was in bed asleep. The trick was going to be getting past Remus, who was on the sitting room couch.
Draco crept slowly across the kitchen and hesitated in the doorway. Harry clutched at his shirt at the small of his back and Draco felt his nerves disappear. He could do this. For Harry. He felt a smile twist his lips, glad his best friend trusted him enough to go along with his plan. It had taken a little bit of convincing because Harry didn’t want to leave their Dad, but Draco promised they would see Severus again soon. They just had to get away from his mother, then they could have their Dad come and get them and help hide them away from her.
“Wish him to sleep.” He whispered and Harry obediently scrunched his face up in concentration. Draco laughed quietly, thinking Harry looked silly like that. The green-eyed boy stuck his tongue out at his friend, grinning back. Draco grabbed his hand, “Alright. Let’s go.”
…
“Why do you think Draco’s back?” Goyle asked after hearing from Ron the news.
“I don’t now.” The redheaded Gryffindor shrugged. He went to clear the map, but Crabbe stopped him.
“Wait! Look!”
“What are they doing?” Goyle frowned as he watched the two dots creep out of the bedroom, across the kitchen, and then slowly across the sitting room.
“Looks like they’re leaving Snape’s rooms.” Crabbe was shocked. That was dangerous.
“Maybe they're hungry.” Ron shook his head with a smile. “I’m not surprised that their troublemakers even at this age.”
“Come on! We have to get to them.” Goyle was already moving to the door. “It’s dangerous for them to be walking around. Who knows who will see or what they’ll do.”
“Yeah.” Ron hurried after him. “And no one is supposed to know Harry’s shrunk too.”
“He’s not shrunk, just younger.” Crabbe pointed out.
“Whatever!” Ron rolled his eyes. “Go faster, you big oaf!”
…
“Are you sure you know where we are?” Harry asked softly. There was no worry in his voice. Just curiosity. Fear couldn’t touch him as long as the blonde was holding his hand.
“I think so. It’s so dark!” Draco puffed his hair out of his face and glared at the corridor. He was sure this was the way to the Entrance Hall! Harry giggled at him and brought up his hands, tangling his fingers in the long blond strands. The hair became smooth and brushed, then slowly wrapped in a loose, simple braid. Draco smiled sweetly and captured Harry’s hand again, “Thanks.”
Harry opened his mouth to say something, but nothing came out as his green eyes looked over Draco’s head and widened with fear. Draco spun around, tugging his smaller friend behind him. Large shadows loomed before them and he opened his mouth to scream, but he was so afraid that his throat had closed in on itself.
“Draco!” A deep voice called. “Are you alright? What are you doing out here?”
A tall, muscular blonde came into the light of the torch that hung above his and Harry’s head. Draco relaxed, recognizing him. He was one of the Slytherins he had met to reassure them he was okay. And one of the ones that seemed so familiar and safe to him. “You scared me! Make some noise next time!” He snapped at the older, bigger boy.
But his smaller size didn’t seem to hinder his ability to cow the Slytherin. The blonde stilled and smiled sheepishly. “Sorry, Draco.”
“Harry!” Ron came up and knelt before Draco, his attention on the smaller boy hiding behind his back. “Are you okay? Why did you leave Snape’s rooms?” He reached for his friend, to see him, but Harry flinched away and whimpered.
“Leave him alone!” Draco ordered sharply and then sneered. “Obviously he doesn’t want you to touch him.”
Ron scowled and opened his mouth, but Crabbe put a hand on his shoulder and shook his head. That would have pissed the redhead off more except he could tell the Slytherin didn’t mean it as an order. It was just advice. Grumbling, he stood and allowed the Slytherins to talk to their Prince, but his eyes never left Harry.
“What are you doing, Draco?” Crabbe asked.
“Escaping. My mother is being difficult. We’re going to hide away and then let only Dad know where we are. Maybe Moony too. You’ll help us by getting us to the Entrance Hall and then you’ll tell no one you saw us.”
“Dad?” Ron snorted in laughter. Crabbe and Goyle ignored him.
“It’s dangerous…” Goyle began.
“We’ll be careful.” Draco shrugged. “I have to do something or else she’ll take me from Harry again.”
“I’m surprise you care so much, Malfoy.” Ron glared at the child.
“Who are you?” Draco asked icily. “What are you doing here? It’s obvious no one wants you around.”
“Shut up! Harry wants me around! I’m his best mate!” Ron yelled hotly.
“He’s mine!” Draco yelled furiously. “Tell him, Baby! Tell him you want him to leave!”
Harry was struck mute, though. All the yelling and the strangers, two of whom reminded him of his Uncle, were too much for him and his voice was lost. But he did want the strangers to go and if he could get one to leave he would. There was no way he wanted to go with the redheaded stranger! He wanted Draco! So Harry leaned passed Draco far enough to kiss his cheek and then darted back behind him. Draco grinned triumphantly.
“Bye, bye.” He gave a little wave at the shocked Gryffindor.
Crabbe gently caught Ron’s arm and pulled him a bit away as Goyle worked out the details for Draco’s little escape.
“I’m not leaving you two alone with Harry!” Ron said hotly.
“I know.” Crabbe shrugged. “I just think that since Harry doesn’t remember you, you should stay quiet. You’ll only upset him and you don’t want him to have his first memories of you as bad ones.”
“How come Malfoy knows you two?”
“We told you Snape and Mrs. Malfoy brought him to us before they supposedly left the school. We were introduced then.”
Ron crossed his arms petulantly, but nodded that he would be quiet. Crabbe gave a small smile and went back to his friend and leader. Goyle was nodding and Draco was giving orders. Crabbe shook his head ruefully. Some things never changed. Then his eyes slid to the obviously frightened child Draco was protecting. Maybe some things did change. He had never thought to see that vulnerable and helpless expression on Harry Potter’s face.
“Well? What are you waiting for? Get moving!” Draco said haughtily, sticking his nose in the air.
Unlike Draco, the three teens knew that if they left Hogwarts’ grounds the wards would record them leaving. But not if they used one of the underground passages. Goyle had seen the map enough times to know that there were some and briefly consulting Ron, they decided to use the one that led to Honeydukes.
The five of them made their way silently to the humpbacked, one-eyed witch. Ron said the password and they entered the dark passage. Harry whimpered and Draco glared at Crabbe until the teen made a light. Harry relaxed as soon as he could see and he followed Draco closely. He wouldn’t allow any of the strange boys at his back so he came last and the three teens led the way.
Honeydukes owner did not wake as the teens crept out of his cellar and into the store itself. The teens froze as they suddenly realized that they had come to a dead end. They couldn’t open the front door without the alarm going off and casting a spell at it to try and disconnect it would make it go off as well. They looked at each other feeling stupid for not thinking ahead.
“What’s the hold up?” Draco demanded in a stage-whisper.
Ron glared at him, but it was Goyle who spoke. “There’s an alarm on the door. We can’t get out.”
“No problem.” Draco huffed and turned to Harry expectantly.
Crabbe opened his mouth to warn him not to cast magic, but was struck dumb as the small boy closed his eyes. Magic rippled out of him. It was so strong and pure that the three teens could literally feel it washing through them like a sheet of ice cold water. It passed fast, though, and the door opened silently. Green eyes opened and Harry leaned tiredly into Draco’s embrace.
“We need to go somewhere to rest.” Draco decided, looking to Goyle for answers. But the teens were struck dumb and couldn’t move. Draco sniffed in disdain and helped Harry out of the store. As soon as the two children were out of sight, the teens came back to themselves and hurried after them.
“You’ll be recognized anywhere here.” Crabbe told Draco with a frown.
“There’s the Shrieking Shack.” Ron offered. “That’s empty.”
“Alright.” Draco nodded absently. His attention was on his friend who was beginning to stumble from exhaustion.
“I’ll carry him.” Goyle offered and reached for the little boy. As soon as his hands touched Harry’s shoulders, however, the boy jerked back with a frightened cry. Draco shoved at the Slytherins hands and crouched at Harry’s side.
“Are you alright, Baby?” He asked gently, brushing back his silky bangs.
Harry buried his head in Draco’s chest in answer.
“We need to get off the street.” Crabbe said uncomfortably. Ron was glaring murder at the blonde’s back.
“Can you walk, Harry? I won’t let them touch you again. I’m sorry.” He coaxed Harry to his feet. The boy managed to walk, but it was a slow pace. No one said anything about it, though.
…
The teens hadn’t felt comfortable leaving to two boys alone in the Shack, but they had no choice. The plan was to go back to school and act like everything was normal. That Saturday was a Hogsmeade weekend, ironically, but Greg wouldn’t be going. Instead, he’d stay in the castle and if he saw an opportunity to let either Professor Snape or Mr. Lupin know of the two escapees whereabouts were, he would. He wasn’t having much luck. Neither of the men could be found.
Until then, Ron led his friends to the Shack while Vince went with Pansy. The two groups met up just outside the Shack and got into a huge fight. Ron was furious that Vince was trusting Pansy when she obviously was trouble. Hermione and Ginny were yelling at Ron for telling the Slytherins in the first place. Neville watched helplessly and when he noticed they were getting too much attention, managed to coax a truce from the others and guide them out of sight and inside.
“Who are they and what are they doing here?” Draco demanded with crossed arms as soon as they stepped in.
“These are Harry’s friends.” Vince said reluctantly.
“You know them, Harry?” Draco asked, looking over his shoulder at the boy at his back. Harry shook his head. “You heard him. Get out.” He turned his attention to the blonde girl. “Hello, Pansy.” And then back to Vince. “You bring food and water?”
“Harry, are you alright?” Hermione said tearfully.
Ginny knelt, “You two are soooo cute!”
That caught Draco’s attention and he smirked at her, “Of course I am.”
“Here.” Vince un-shrink a bag of food and handed it over.
After confused talk and maneuvering, they settled on the floor in a half circle. Harry sat at the end with Draco between him and the strangers. He sat so close to the blonde’s side that he was practically in his lap and Draco had one arm around his shoulders, though his attention was on everyone else, he’d occasionally rub the smaller boy’s back to calm him. No one spoke loud after Harry collapsed in a ball whimpering when Ron and Pansy began to scream at each other.
…
Severus strode into his sitting room. Narcissa was on his heels. Remus came a few feet behind them. The air around the three was thick with tension. When Narcissa realized her son was gone, she immediately blamed Severus, saying he stashed the boys away. She didn’t listen to him when he assured her that wasn’t the case and kept snapping at her to get out of his way.
Remus was almost falling in pieces with worry. Where could the boys have gone? They had searched the whole castle and hadn’t found them. Dumbledore had assured them that the wards hadn’t recorded them leaving Hogwarts grounds. Remus kept feeling like there was something he was forgetting. It dawned on him and he gasped. The secret passages! Where was his head! He was just so worried… no matter, he remembered now. He turned and left Severus and Narcissa exchanging icy threats.
…
The teens fell silent as Harry’s head came up. It had been resting peacefully on Draco’s shoulder since they finished lunch. The boy’s face broke out into a smile and his eyes rested on the shadows to the back of the Shack. The teens jumped to their feet, wands extended. Draco snorted at them and smirked superiorly as Remus came out of the shadows hiding the basement door. Harry got up and ran to him.
“I’ve been worried sick, pup.” He scolded, holding the boy tight. “Though I can see you are well protected.” He added as he eyed the six teenagers and their wands.
Draco glared and stood. “I wouldn’t let anything hurt, Harry.”
“I know you wouldn’t mean to.” Remus soothed. “But there are mean people out there.”
“I know that!” Draco stomped his foot. “But we had to runaway or Mother would take me away again!”
Remus smiled and released Harry. The boy turned and reached for Draco. The blonde went to his side reluctantly, but his upset drained away when the smaller boy took his hand.
“Can I ask what you all are doing here?” Remus asked the teenagers. The Gryffindors looked sheepish and the Slytherins faces were blank. “Severus is going to be furious.” Remus said with a sympathetic smile.
“Daddy’s mad at me?” Harry spoke for the first time in a small, high voice. The Gryffindor’s gasped and almost fell over with shock at what Harry called their hated Potions Master.
Remus looked down at him solemnly, ignoring the others. “I’m afraid he might be. He loves you and you really, really scared him by disappearing. He thinks someone bad has you and is hurting you.”
“But we couldn’t tell him before we left cause then Mother would get suspicious.” Draco defended his plan as he felt Harry’s fear and sorrow crash through him. “He won’t be mad when he sees we’re okay and I tell him why.”
“I hope so.” Remus shook his head and then hugged them both to his chest one more time. “Merlin, I’m so glad you both are safe.”
“Sir? What’s going on?” Hermione spoke up. “Why are Harry and Draco calling Professor Snape Dad?”
“And why is Draco calling Harry baby?” Ron glared.
Remus sighed and straightened, his hand still resting on the two children’s backs. “I’m afraid you’ll have to ask the Headmaster or Severus.”
“But Professor!” Ginny and Hermione protested.
“No.” Remus shook his head. “You are Harry’s friend, but that does not mean you need to know everything. You should care more about what is best for Harry and not what you want. I will not answer you questions.”
The shocked silence was broken by a smooth voice. “I’m impressed, Wolf. I didn’t think you had it in you.”
“Dad!” Draco gasped and spun to face the shadows.
“Severus.” Remus was just as shocked. The room was too dusty for him to be able to smell the man’s approach and the other’s talking and the Shack shifting covered the sound of his light footsteps.
The dark eyes ignored the teens in the room and turned from one child to the next. Draco was unafraid. He was confident he had done what was right and what was needed. Harry was not so serene. His eyes were round with terror and his face was pale. Severus then looked to the Wolf. Draco stood close at one side; Harry was pressed into his legs. The werewolf was unconsciously comforting them with the hand he had on their backs. His face was tired, but his body was strong and his eyes were still bright with relief. He looked good with the children. Severus shook his head sharply to rid himself from the strangely flavored thoughts.
“What is going on?” Severus demanded, eyes falling again on Draco, knowing the answer would come from him.
And the blonde again explained why he had come up with the plan to run away and everything that had happened since last night. When the boy fell silent, the whole room tensed for Severus’ reaction. Harry’s gaze was the most intense. He looked like he was waiting for the axe to fall, there was no hope in his emerald depths, and the intensity of his despair made Draco shake and press into Remus’ legs for support.
“I can respect your decision to protect Harry. I believe you honestly weighed the consequences of your actions and the consequences of not acting, and judged it best to act. I trust you to protect, Harry. But it was inexcusable not to inform me of your plan. I could have helped and should I deem it necessary to fool your mother into believing I had no hand in your flight, I am perfectly capable of such deception.”
“I’m sorry, Dad.” Draco lowered his eyes.
“I hope nothing like this occurs in the future.”
“No, Dad.” Draco answered immediately.
“You both are forgiven, but you will have no desert for three days to remind you how wrong you actions were.”
Harry gasped, but it wasn’t one of horror. It was surprise. A sob rose and tears spilled from his eyes. His whole body shook violently in reaction. Draco reached over and grinned at him. Harry clasped his hand in Draco’s, but his eyes never left his Dad’s. “You mean… You still love me?”
“Come here.” Severus said sternly, but Harry and Draco could see past that to the utter relief and care in his eyes. The boys ran forward and Severus knelt so that he could embrace them both. “Of course I do. Nothing will change that. Nothing.”
Ginny sank to her knees and only Neville saved her from hitting her head as she almost fainted with shock. Ron’s mouth was hanging open and Hermione was blinking dumbly for the first time in her life. The Slytherins were staring a bit dazed, but you could see the sheer effort and will-power it was taking to remain expressionless. Remus knew Severus wouldn’t appreciate the audience or comments the students would have and stepped forward to bring their attention to him while Severus had his moment with the boys.
“Thank you for bringing the boys food and supplies.” He told them all and then looked at Ron and Vince. “And thank you for making sure they got here safe. We’ll make sure they get back to the castle safely, but I think it’s time for you all to head back yourselves. We don’t want to make anyone suspicious.”
“Of course.” Pansy said and left without another word. Vince hurried after.
“Harry’s doing better. It’s only going to take time.” Remus was telling the Gryffindors as he herded them subtly out the door. “Be sure you asked Dumbledore any questions. He’ll tell you what he can, but remember that some things must remain secret for a while. Trust me that we will tell you if we ever need help.”
“O-okay.” Hermione stuttered.
“Goodbye, Professor.” Neville smiled at Remus. He had been the least disturbed by the scene within the Shack.
“Take care of them.” Remus winked with a smile. Neville laughed and led his friends away.
The werewolf waited until the sixth year students were out of sight before turning back into the Shack. Severus was sitting on the floor. Harry was in his lap and Draco was to the side of him, telling him all about his lessons and how angry he was at his mother. Severus didn’t turn to look at Remus as he entered. He kept his attention on Draco and his face blank, nodding every few minutes. Harry gave Remus a smile and leaned back into Severus’ chest. The Potions Master lifted a hand in response and ran it through Harry’s wild hair comfortingly. Remus smiled and took a seat across from them.
“… and I don’t know why I have to know all this stuff. That’s why we have law-wizards! I much rather learn about magic. Where is my wand, Dad? Mother said she’d give it to me when I’m older, but that’s ridiculous. I won’t hurt myself with it.” The blonde crossed his arms in a huff.
“I will see what I can do.” Severus told him and finally brought his eyes up to meet the werewolf’s across from him. He hoped none of his embarrassment reached his eyes. What were these children doing to him! “Narcissa will expect us back.”
Remus nodded understanding, but his amber eyes lit on the boys with worry. “I can come back when you two go to sleep.”
“We can’t keep Draco away from her for long.” Severus sighed and gave the blonde a sharp look when Draco looked to open his mouth in anger. “I want you here and Harry needs you. But she is your mother and will do more damage if we try to pretend we don’t know where you are.”
“Maybe if we tell her what Draco was willing to do to stay, she’ll relent?” Remus asked hopefully.
“Doubtful.” Severus sighed and stood.
Harry didn’t want to be put down yet and turned, wrapping his legs around his Dad’s waist and his arms around the man’s neck. Severus steadied and balanced him instinctively. Draco, feeling left out, lifted his arms arrogantly at Remus. The werewolf laughed and hefted the bigger child to his hip. Draco stuck his tongue out at Harry and the boy giggled into Severus’ shoulder.
“We are bringing them back?” Remus asked.
Severus stared at the man blankly, but behind his eyes he was just taking in the situation they were in. Remus so naturally holding the eight year old Lord of the Malfoy family. The boy’s thick braid falling only an inch short of his hips draped over Remus shoulder. The weight of Harry in his arms, the warmth of the child on his side, the soft black hair mingling with lank ebony. This had to be a dream. Surely this wasn’t reality.
“Dad?” Draco asked from Remus’ arms. A knowing smile spread softly across Lupin’s mouth and Severus blinked to tear his attention from almost glowing amber eyes.
“We will take them to the Headmaster.” He turned and strode purposely to the tunnel entrance. “His main concern is Harry. He understands Draco must be with him until the time comes where they can be safely separated. I will pretend I still don’t know where the boys are. As will you. Draco ran to Albus last night with Harry and has been there since. Albus, of course, will be able to defend himself when Narcissa discovers his location.”
“Very Slytherin of you, Severus.” Remus chuckled warmly. “Not only are you keeping the boys within reach, you have deflected Mrs. Malfoy’s wrath.”
Severus sneered at him and the boys laughed.
…
Severus predicted Dumbledore perfectly. The elderly headmaster was overjoyed to hide the boys away from Narcissa. Harry was very wary around him, would flinch and stay mute, but he would smile, eat, and sit relaxed as long as Draco was by his side. Draco enjoyed the headmaster’s company once he got over his anger that the man had once hurt his baby. The old man gave him candy and he knew he had to be polite since Dumbledore was shielding him from his mother.
As for Narcissa, she began to believe that Severus really didn’t know where the boys were. Her anger turned into fear. The boys disappeared Friday night and by Sunday evening she was frantic. The boys would age and she was terrified they would be wounded or made vulnerable. Remus didn’t necessarily like the woman, but couldn’t stand to her suffer such fear and his eyes bore heavily into Severus until he gave in.
He told her that he didn’t know where the boys were, but that the headmaster did. Supposedly, Draco had called on him in some sort of oath and until Draco feels he will be allowed to remain, he and Harry both will remain wherever they were. Narcissa raged, but Severus raged back saying it was her fault he was denied Harry. That shut her up and she secluded herself in her room. Remus took this time to visit the boys. Severus wished he could do the same, but knew he couldn’t if he were to protect the boys.
So it was that the week ended. Remus came back to their quarters and lay awake all night while up in the headmaster’s office two eight year old boys slowly became nine. Narcissa paced and Dumbledore sat unconscious. But the two boys lay sleeping peacefully with tiny smiles on their faces.
Chapter Sixteen
The boys woke Monday morning curled up in each other’s arms. Draco smiled at Harry and laid a gentle kiss on his lips. Harry cuddled up against him with a happy murmur. They lay peaceably for a long minute before Draco asked how Harry slept. Harry didn’t answer at first and Draco could feel the wild swings in the smaller boy’s emotions as he went through the year of memories now available to him.
“I couldn’t keep my magic locked away and it burnt Uncle Vernon.” Harry said softly. “He hasn’t hit me since then. It hasn’t stopped Dudley, though.”
Draco felt the sharp spike of gratefulness and twin waves of horror and disgust. “You thought that just proved you were evil and they had a right to hurt you.” He guessed.
“Yeah.” Harry admitted, burying his face into Draco’s shoulder.
“But you know now that magic isn’t bad or evil.”
“Yeah.” Harry agreed and the horror and disgust gave way to an accepting sadness.
“You’ll be fine.” Draco smiled and kissed him again. “I’ll make sure of it.”
“Thank you, Ray. I don’t know… I don’t know how I could make it through this without you.”
“And you will never have to find out because I’m not going anywhere.” Draco grinned and climbed out of the bed pushed into the corner of the headmaster’s bedroom.
He straightened his clothes and wrinkled his nose at the stiffness of them. He’d been wearing the same outfit for three days now. Harry laughed quietly at him and brushed them off with magic-tainted hands. The cloth softened and smelled cleaner when he was through. He then pushed his hands gently into Draco’s hair and slowly pulled them down, watching the white silk become smooth like water. Draco smiled as Harry’s serene pleasure and content rolled through him. His mother had wanted to cut his hair a bit shorter since it was now as long as his hips, but he had refused. He knew how much Harry loved his hair and that in turn made him prefer it long.
“You next.” Draco sniffed disdainfully at Harry’s soiled clothes. Harry laughed and obliged his friend.
“Good morning, boys.” Dumbledore said brightly as he sat up with twinkling eyes.
“Good morning, Headmaster.” Draco answered formally, his smile turning into a blank mask now that he knew they were being observed. Harry shrank back a bit so Draco was standing half-infront of him. Draco felt pride and strength swell his chest at his baby’s trust in him.
“How was your night? The change wasn’t painful?”
“No, Headmaster.” Draco answered. Harry merely looked confused.
Dumbledore saw his confusion. He explained as he got up and got dressed. “You and young Malfoy are under a spell. You are really sixteen years old, but due to unforeseen side-effects to a healing spell Severus, Draco, and I cast on you, Harry, you were returned to four years of age. Every seven days, you are returned a year of your life. You and Lord Malfoy are now nine years old. It is because of this spell that you two are connected as you are, as well. Lord Malfoy can feel your feelings as you do and the spells is how you know when he is in trouble. The reason you can’t feel his emotions the way he can feel yours is because you are the focus of the spell and so his magical connection to you is stronger than your magical connection to him.” He chuckled warmly. “Though I’d guess that your emotional bond is about equal and has nothing to do with the spell at this point.”
Draco felt Harry’s worry and grabbed his hand, accurately guessing what had caused his friend to be filled with doubt. “Dumbledore is right. I love you because of who you are and everything that we’ve been through together. It’s not ‘cause of some stupid spell. I won’t change any when the spell wears off. Baby, I swear it to you as the oath of a Malfoy.”
Harry’s fear melted and he practically beamed with joy and love. Draco felt his cheeks burn as the heat rushed through him and he wrapped an arm around the smaller boy possessively. Dumbledore laughed, but he was calculating behind his kind eyes. He led the two boys down to his office where he had breakfast served. Fawkes flew to Harry immediately and the green-eyed child played with the fire bird happily. Draco watched with a fond smile and dutifully carried on polite, small-talk with his host. They had just finished when Dumbledore looked off into space and shooed them back up into his bedroom.
“Your mother is on her way and she is not happy.” He smiled. “Hide. Don’t come out unless I say.”
“Come, Harry.” Draco said and put out his hand for the smaller boy to take. Harry took it obediently and the blonde led him up the stairs.
“Come in, Ms. Malfoy.” Dumbledore called as there was a knock at his door. Fawkes flew over to his perch as the woman entered. Dumbledore smiled kindly at her. “What can I do for you today?”
“Don’t play dumb, Albus.” She answered, stalking to his desk and glaring at him. “I’ve come for my son. Where is he?”
Dumbledore smiled sadly at her. “I truly regret not being able to tell you that information, Narcissa, but I was bound into a wizard’s oath of silence by Lord Malfoy. He does not wish his presence known to you. I do sympathize with your concerns, however, and assure you that the young man is in fine physical condition, happy, and continuing to receive an excellent education.”
Narcissa let him talk and when he was finished, planted both of her long, manicured hands on his desk and gathered all of her will and magic around her like an icy blanket of power. “Do not test me, Albus Dumbledore. I will bring the world crashing down around your head if you try and keep my son from me.”
“Narcissa. The child is afraid you will remove him from the man he looks up to as a new father and the boy he looks on as his brother. They are bound by magic, I’ve tested it thoroughly. Separation for any length of time would cause magical and emotional harm. Ignoring your son’s condition and wishes is negligent. He has called on a third party to protect him. There is nothing illegal about what has happened. My hands are tied and so are yours. Draco has made his choice.”
Narcissa mentally winced at the headmaster’s words. He was calling her an unfit mother! Doubts swirled in her brain and fear pumped in her heart. What was she suppose to do? Leave him to grow more and more attached to Harry when the boy was obviously damaged beyond recovery? Draco was almost acting like the brunette had been an extension of his own body and soul. His individuality, his independence was being robbed from him. Was she supposed to sit back and let that happen? No! No, she wouldn’t allow that ill-fated boy and this manipulative devil-spawn to take her baby from her or ruin him!
“Negligence? That is an ironic charge to be throwing at me, Albus, when you had your little boy hero growing up in a foul, abusive home. What would you call that? Conspiracy, collusion? You aided and abetted the mental, emotional, and physical abuse of a child for almost ten years. In fact, that would make you guilty of his murder.”
“Enough.” Dumbledore cut in sharply. He stood and glared into her eyes. “You’ve said enough. There is no proof of your claims. No one has brought charges against me. Draco, himself, is acting against you. We have nothing further to say to each other. You are free to remain at Hogwarts for as long as you deem necessary, but I cannot reveal your son’s location until he permits me. If you wish to communicate with him, write him a letter. I would be more than happy to pass it on.”
Narcissa bared her teeth in rage, but knew she would get no further with the stubborn bastard. She turned, her skirts swirling about her ankles, and stormed from the office. Dumbledore sighed and sat in his chair, closing his eyes for a few seconds. Narcissa’s accusations had been dangerous indeed. He’d have to deal with the woman’s ire and knowledge. But first he had two boys to question.
With a swish of his wand, his bedroom door opened and he called them back down. He waited until they were settled into the chairs across from his desk before offering them candy. Draco accepted, but Harry shook his head shyly. Dumbledore smiled at him, but Harry still wouldn’t meet his eyes or speak up in his presence. Ah, well. Some things took time.
“How are your studies going?” He asked once the blonde had finished his candy. “If I’m going to continue your lessons it would be good to know where you stand.”
“Won’t Dad and Moony teach us still?” Draco asked with a small frown. He knew he was supposed to keep all emotion from his face, but sometimes allowing some emotion through achieved a purpose. This expression was a warning. He was going to get what he wanted and it would be less painful to just go along with him while he was still in a good mood.
“They will be coming and teaching you when they can, but if your mother is around or they have class to teach, then it will be up to me. I don’t want you two to fall behind and have your father get angry with me.” Dumbledore smiled.
“Well, we have different lessons.” Draco answered thoughtfully. “I study acting, politics, law, history, and language. My physical lessons are walking, dancing, tumbling, and self-defense. My magical studies include Occlumency at night with Dad, magical theory, and memorizing the pronunciation of spells. I haven’t been aloud to actually practice magic yet because my mother feels I’m still too young. I would also like to return to flying. Swimming would be nice too.”
“That is very impressive, young Malfoy.”
“Thank you, sir.”
“And what about you, Harry? What have you learned?” He asked gently, but the boy shook his head and looked shyly at his hands in his lap. “Come now, my boy. You know I wouldn’t hurt you. I care about you a great deal. There is nothing to be afraid of.” Fawkes gave an encouraging trill and Dumbledore smiled fondly at the bird. “You see. Even Fawkes thinks you’re safe here.”
Harry looked up at the old man with wary green eyes. He slid a glance over at Draco, but the boy was sitting straight and blank faced, unwilling to influence him one way or the other since he was unsure how much he trusted the old man himself. Harry turned his attention back to Dumbledore and whispered, “I haven’t learned much. Just reading, writing, math, and some magical theory. Occlumency too.” He blushed and his voice became a mere whisper. “I didn’t talk for a while and they couldn’t really teach me like that and Moony mostly talks about my first father and my mother.”
“I see.” Dumbledore twinkled at him. “Your parents were very great people. It is a worthy subject to learn about. You shouldn’t feel too overshadowed by Draco’s progress, Harry. He is ahead only because he has knowledge from years you do not have access too yet.”
Harry nodded and his gaze in his lap. Draco thought it was time to step in. Harry’s anxiety was rising. The small brunette hated to be in the center of attention. “Will you take us out flying today, sir?”
“I don’t think that will be possible, Draco. It’s too big of a risk and I’m afraid your mother still hasn’t accepted the situation.”
“So we’re going to stay up here all day?” Draco asked evenly, but his frown had come back. “What about our tumbling lessons in France?”
“I will see what I can do.” Dumbledore promised. “Now. How would you feel about a practical lesson in magic?”
Draco perked up. “That would be great.”
“Alright. I have Harry’s wand here. I’m sure since you are both so close you will have no problems using it as well as Harry.”
Draco accepted the wood and smiled. “I’m sure I’ll be okay.”
“What spells have you memorized?” Dumbledore asked.
“Wingardium Leviosa.” The blonde said with an easy flick. A paper weight on the headmaster’s desk rose gracefully in the air.
“Well done.” Dumbledore laughed. “Why don’t you try it, Harry?”
Draco ended his spell and was handing Harry the wand when the black-haired boy raised his hand and repeated what Draco had. The paper weight obediently rose. Draco’s mouth stretched into a proud smile. “Good job, Baby!”
“Yes. Very good indeed.” Dumbledore smiled with satisfaction.
The hours passed as they practiced more and more difficult spells. Dumbledore left once or twice to go to work, but came back shortly to continue their lessons. By dinner, the boys were dueling with harmless spells and weak shields. Dumbledore’s office looked the worse for wear, but the headmaster couldn’t be any happier. The boys were relaxing around him, Draco especially who felt grateful and hungry for more lessons. Yes. Things were going very well.
…
The boys were just getting ready for bed. Dumbledore was down in his office doing paper work. Draco was glowing with happy exhaustion and Harry looked the same. Suddenly, Harry tensed. His whole body went rigid. Draco’s head snapped up and he rushed to Harry’s side.
“Baby! Baby, what’s wrong?” Draco demanded, grabbing the smaller boy roughly by his shoulders.
Harry’s eyes slowly slid over to the blonde’s, but he couldn’t focus. Draco opened his mouth to scream for help when he suddenly crumpled unconscious. Harry swayed without his friend’s support. Then the pain hit. He screamed as blood erupted from his scar and began to go into convulsions.
Dumbledore rushed up to his room to find the boys on the floor; Draco as still as death and Harry spasming with agonized whimpers. He tried to hold Harry secure, but the boy’s body bowed back as his muscles clinched impossibly tight. Reaching with his magic he sent a mental call for the school nurse and held on as best as he could.
…
Draco slowly woke to the sound of ragged breathing and a sharply chanting woman. He opened heavy eyes and saw the nurse hovering over his baby who jerked horrifically like a dieing spider. He screamed and launched himself at his friend, but was grabbed by the waist. He looked up furiously into Dumbledore’s face.
“No, my boy. Harry needs medical attention and you’ll only get in the way right now.” He said with sad sympathy. “You do want your friend to get better, right?”
“Yes.” Draco’s voice trembled.
“Come. Sit with me and tell me what you saw.”
Draco allowed himself to be carried over to Dumbledore’s bed. His gray eyes never left Harry’s small broken form. “The evil man was there and he was telling the Death Eaters that training was finally complete. He’s ready to start some missions. The first will be to attack Kings Cross station and all the establishments that serve as a gate between the muggle and wizarding world. I didn’t recognize many of the names, but I know the Leaky Cauldron. Then he called forward the Inner Circle. He noticed Dad wasn’t there and got really, really mad. He punished lots of people for not preventing Dad from leaving the fold and punished them for not informing him of the betrayal sooner. Then he screamed that the one to bring him Dad’s head would be rewarded beyond their wildest dreams. Then he dismissed everyone and I woke up.”
“That is very grave news.” Dumbledore said, his eyes focused elsewhere as he began to plot.
“Baby felt all the curses the bad man cast to punish his followers?” Draco asked in a terrified little voice. “Will he die?”
“No, Draco. He will live.” Dumbledore assured. “He is just very, very sick.”
“I want my Dad!” Draco wailed and burst into tears.
“I’m sorry, but he can’t come up. We’d be giving away where you are and he is very tired from all the worrying you’ve put him through. You want him to rest, don’t you? Besides, Harry needs quiet. He’d be very hurt if he saw how upset he was making your father. When he’s feeling better, I will bring him.”
Draco cried helplessly, but tapered off when Madam Pomfrey approached looking like she would faint at any moment.
“I’ve done the best I can, but there is still damage done. He’s too young and already malnourished. We need specialized potions, Albus.”
“I will get them. Just give me a list.” Dumbledore nodded. “What kind of permanent damage can we expect?”
“He will get tired easily and his hands will begin shaking when he gets fatigued. His eyes are worse now and I expect he’ll have temporary blind spells. There is also the possibility of him having random seizures.”
“May I go lay with him?” Draco asked in a hoarse voice.
“You may.” She smiled at him tiredly and Draco ran to the bed and crawled up next to Harry, crying into the smaller boy’s shoulder as he curled protectively around him.
…
Draco woke the next morning and instantly looked for Harry. The smaller boy was where he was supposed to be: at his side, asleep. He sighed in relief and stroked the black hair from his friend’s too pale face. He lay like this for an hour before the green eyes opened slowly. They blinked a few times and then panic hit Draco in the gut.
“What’s wrong, Baby?” He asked worriedly.
“R-r-ray?” Harry’s voice questioned and Draco hated the weak quiver in it.
“Yes. I’m here. What’s wrong? Does something hurt?”
“Can’t… can’t see, Ray.” Harry whimpered. “E-e-everything is d-d-dark.”
“Shhh…” Draco wrapped his arms around his friend and rocked him. “Madam Pomfrey told me that you will have blind spells, but that they are only temporary. You’ll see again soon.”
“Hurts.” Harry cried.
“I know. I know.” Draco cried with him. Minutes passed and they clung to each other fearfully. Draco almost crumpled with relief when a wave of relief and joy rushed out from Harry.
“I can see!” He said happily, his green orbs focusing on Draco for the first time since he woke.
“Good.” Draco smiled tearfully.
Harry frowned and brought his hands up to wipe away the blonde’s tears. “I’m okay. Don’t be sad, Ray.”
Draco nodded and forced his emotions from his face. He was still torn up and frightened, but he wouldn’t let his baby see. He’d be strong for Harry. “Alright. Do you think you can get up? I can go get you breakfast.”
“I can walk downstairs. It’s not too far to Dumbledore’s office.”
Draco helped Harry stand and slowly make his way to the stairs and down them. Halfway there, Harry’s hands began to tremble and by the time Draco got Harry into a seat they were shaking violently. Draco clasped them in his own and whispered soothing nothings until Harry relaxed and began to doze. Harry knelt in front of his chair and didn’t move, even when the black-haired boy fell asleep. He stared at his friend, unable to look away.
His baby was so fragile and yet strong. Even now he could feel the deep and powerful magic rising to work with the healing spells still wrapped around Harry to fix as much as they could. Dumbledore said Harry needed potions. Dad was great at potions. Decided, he carefully pulled his hands from Harry’s and went over to the fireplace. He pulled Harry’s wand from his pants and Accioed the floo powder.
“Potion’s classroom!” He called as he flung it down. The fire whooshed green. He waited impatiently until Severus’ head entered the flames.
“What is it?” The man snapped, but his expression melted into concern when he saw who called him. “Draco? What’s wrong?”
Tearfully, Draco told his father what happened and how bad Harry was and that he needed potions bad. Rage crossed Severus’ features before he carefully masked his face into something neutral.
“I’ll be right there. Don’t leave Harry’s side.”
“Yes, Father.” Draco nodded, wiping away his own tears. He trotted away from the fire and returned to his place sitting in front of Harry’s chair, his back resting against Harry’s legs.
…
Severus dismissed class and flooed to his rooms. He found a defeated and exhausted Narcissa and a worried Wolf. He quickly told them what he had learned from Draco. There was no time for petty games with Narcissa. Not if the headmaster was moving to try and separate him from the boys. He’d need all the help he could get to check Albus’ manipulations. Remus’ eyes flashed gold when he heard and Narcissa stood with renewed strength.
“We have to work together no matter how much we may not like it.” Severus snapped at the blonde woman. “Separating the boys caused Draco agony and damage during the aging, who knows what going through a vision would do to him if he were away from Harry. Maybe he would feel some of the curses as well. In any case, we can’t risk it.”
“And Draco will only fight you. He has his memories of being sixteen.” Remus cut in with a hard edge. “He is not truly nine and he has made his decision. You will have to accept that.”
“It was a mistake.” Narcissa said shortly. “I am aware of that.”
“Good.” Severus nodded once. “They are up in the headmaster’s office now. Remus, you and Narcissa go to them. Take care of them as best you can. I will go see Pomfrey and find out what she needs.”
“What about the headmaster?” Remus growled.
“He’s probably informing the Order. You should have a small window with the boys uninterrupted.”
Narcissa and Remus hurried to the floo and were gone. Severus was on their heals, except he was heading for the infirmary. Remus came out of the floo first and smiled as Draco lifted his head from Harry’s lap and wilted with obvious relief. His expression shuttered, however, when Narcissa stepped out of the fire behind him.
“She won’t take you away again, Draco.” Remus promised, going to the boy and holding him while running a hand through Harry’s hair. “She’s admitted she was wrong.”
Draco hugged Remus tight before pulling away and taking up a position between them and his mother. “I want to hear it for myself.”
Narcissa looked down at her son. His hair was unbound and began to lift and wave lazily due to his rising magic. Rage and determination shone from his eyes. It hurt so badly to see that look directed at her that she back-stepped and clutched at the fabric above her heart. “I’m sorry, Dragon. I did what I thought was best. I didn’t understand the situation.”
“You aren’t forgiven, Mother.” Draco answered coldly. “But you may stay on the condition that you don’t come within reach of me. I mean it. If you touch me or Harry, I will not be held responsible for my actions.”
“I understand, Dragon.” She said meekly and took up a position by the fireplace.
Draco nodded in satisfaction and turned back to see Remus sitting in the chair with Harry cradled in his lap. Green eyes opened sleepily. Draco went over to them and grabbed Harry’s hand in his own. There were still gentle tremors going through it. “How do you feel, Baby? Are you hungry?”
“Yes.” Harry blushed at all the concern and attention.
“I will order something.” Narcissa offered quietly, moving to the floo.
Draco nodded at her and turned his attention back to Harry. “Dad is making you potions to make you better. He’ll be here soon.”
“Okay.” Harry smiled at the blonde and warm affection rippled down their bond. “Thank you, Ray.”
“How do you feel?” Remus asked gently, realizing Harry had never answered the question.
“I’m fine.” Harry assured him.
“Nothing hurts?” Remus pressed, cupping the child’s face in his hands and looking deeply into Harry’s eyes.
“A little bit all over. I think my head and chest is the worse.” Harry shrugged. “But really, it’s not that bad. I can handle it.”
“Oh Pup. You shouldn’t have to handle it. Never keep your pain to yourself. I’ll always do all I can to make sure that you don’t hurt.”
Harry nodded tearfully and wrapped his arms around the man’s neck, crying into his shoulder. Draco smiled lovingly as he felt Harry’s surprise and gratitude. The fire flared behind him and Narcissa pulled out a tray overflowing with food and drinks. Draco took out Harry’s wand and magically lifted it from her hands and placed it on the desk. He busied himself with separating the foods Harry’ favored from the rest.
…
Severus flooed into Dumbledore’s office just as Harry had finished eating. He rushed to the boy and scooped him up out of Remus’ lap without a word. Harry clung to him, but didn’t cry. Severus held him tight for a few minutes before allowing himself to become aware of the others in the room. Draco and Remus sat in the chairs in front of the headmaster’s desk and wore identical smiles. Narcissa still stood by the fire and was conversing quietly with Poppy who had followed Severus.
“Harry?” He asked, turning his eyes to the child in his arms.
The boy had tensed and he watched in horror as the boy’s eyes rolled back into his head and he began to seizure. Severus dropped to the floor and protected Harry’s head through the violent storm. Draco had leapt to his feet, but Remus was holding him back. Poppy had rushed over, but her spells were not calming Harry’s spasms. It was over as quick as it had started and blurry green eyes were staring up at him.
“Dad?” Harry whispered confusedly.
“Shhh. It’s alright. I have medicine. Swallow them for me, son.”
Harry slow and heavy hands reached for the vial, but Severus ignored it and put the potion to the boy’s lip himself. Harry drank obediently; one, two, and a third before falling into an exhausted slumber. Poppy nodded permission for him to lift the sick child and he did so. Draco pulled away from Remus and pressed desperately against Severus’ legs, hand clasped in Harry’s shirt.
“My.” Dumbledore said as he tried to enter his office, only to find it very crowded.
“I’m taking him back to the hidden room in the infirmary.” Severus said and walked toward the door and the old man, but the headmaster didn’t move. Severus glared at him warningly, arms tightening around the precious burden in his arms, still horrified from witnessing Harry’s suffering.
“Albus?” Remus questioned, eyes beginning to glow.
“The war has truly begun.” Dumbledore intoned gravely. “St. Mungo’s is overflowing and the death count will be high. Seventeen establishments were attacked. Only four were we able to protect, the rest were destroyed.”
“I can do nothing for them, Albus. But I can take care of my son. Move aside.” Severus said softly.
“I have opened the school infirmary to the healers to use. I told you, St. Mungo’s overfilled. Harry will stay here. It is safer at the moment.” Albus shook his head and gazed sadly at the child.
“Then I will take him back to my quarters. Poppy has done all she at the moment and I can call her if I need her again.”
Severus wasn’t about to leave Harry in the company of the manipulative old man when he was vulnerable and sick. Dumbledore must have sensed this for he reluctantly agreed and stepped aside. Severus strode past him, Draco on his heels. Remus and Narcissa moved to follow, but Dumbledore stopped them.
“We need all the help we can get with the injured and warding the four establishments we were able to save.” He sighed tiredly and leaned against the wall. “I could use your help.”
“The Dark Lord has placed a price on me head.” Narcissa answered coldly. “I’m sure I will be of no help.”
“I can put a glamour on you or you could use Polyjuice.” Dumbledore shook his head. “I understand if you would rather not. It could be dangerous and you have a son to think of. Remus? What about you?”
Remus felt torn. He was afraid to be lured back under the headmaster’s control. He wanted to be there for Harry and Draco. He even wanted to be there for Severus, but Narcissa was there as well as Poppy. He knew the medi-witch was none-to-happy with the headmaster and would support Harry in anyway she could. And he couldn’t let others suffer because of his displeasure with Dumbledore. He nodded. The old headmaster smiled in relief and gestured the werewolf closer, explaining what he needed him to do. Narcissa shook her head and left them to it. She had a son to care for after all; even if he hated her at the moment.
…
Harry woke to the sound of someone singing a sweet slow tune. He opened his eyes and blinked in surprise when he found that it was Draco’s lap his head was in and that it was the blonde singing as he played with Harry’s hair. Draco smiled, but didn’t stop. Harry closed his eyes and just basked in the gentle attention and affection of his best friend. It was one of the best moments of his life. All too soon the song came to an end. He opened his eyes again to see Draco’s grey ones ready to catch them.
“How are you feeling?” He asked softly.
“I feel fine.” Harry answered honestly and lifted his arms to prove it. He wrapped them around Draco’s neck and pulled until the blonde was laying next to him on the bed, practically draped over him. Harry sighed in contentment as Draco’s arms came to wrap around him, making him feel utterly safe and cherished. He sighed again, a smile on his lips.
“You’re in a good mood.” Draco laughed softly.
“I love you, Ray.” Harry answered and burrowed closer to his warm body.
…
Severus and Draco were both surprised at Harry’s high spirits throughout the following days. He tried to explain that he finally believed that they really loved him, that they wouldn’t leave him, but they didn’t really understand. So he would just smile sweetly at them and shrug. He had five more seizures and two blind spells. Though the seizures were more horrific, Harry hated the blind spells most. When they happened, he had to be held by either Severus or Draco until it was over. His hatred for the dark had not lessened.
The third day after the vision Harry was strong enough to stay awake for more than a couple hours and was able to walk around without collapsing with exhaustion after a dozen steps. Severus renewed their Occlumency lessons and they worked on it until the boys thought their heads would explode. Narcissa was allowed to be in the same room as them by this point and Draco was even speaking to her, though he was still short with her. She accepted this meekly, but Harry had a suspicion that she wouldn’t for very much longer.
“What do you want to eat?” Severus asked Harry as he brushed a hand through the boy’s hair.
Harry leaned into his father’s hand. Severus responded by pulling the boy to him and lifting him. Harry wrapped his legs around his father’s waist and laid his head tiredly on his shoulder. Severus continued to run his fingers through his son’s hair. Draco watched all this from his position sprawled on the couch. He wrinkled his nose with slight jealously, but didn’t say anything about it. Instead he answered their father.
“I want steak.”
Severus inclined his head in agreement, giving Draco a look that erased any jealousy he was feeling. There was pride in that dark gaze and respect. Draco sat up straight, warmth burning in his chest. Severus reached out to smooth over Draco’s head tenderly as he passed. Draco followed and made faces up at Harry over their Dad’s shoulder. Harry made faces back. It was Draco who burst into laughter first.
“If you have enough energy to be ridiculous, maybe we didn’t work hard enough.” Severus scowled playfully.
“Please.” Draco drawled, sitting next to Harry while their father went around the table to sit across from them. “I’m giddy with exhaustion. If you are annoyed, maybe you worked us to hard.”
“Eat your dinner, brat.” He glared and put his napkin in his lap. Narcissa did the same beside him. Harry and Draco copied them and the table filled with delicious food. The next few minutes were spent in silence as they ate.
Twice Severus prodded at the boys’ mental shields to see if they were being maintained. Draco’s was weaker than Harry’s, but the blonde could maintain them and erect them longer. Draco’s shields were present both times he checked, but he could see through them a bit. The first time Harry’s mind was open, but the second it was locked tight. He nodded his approval.
“What are your plans after dinner?” Narcissa asked halfway through the meal.
“Bath and bed?” Harry spoke up hopefully.
“For you, yes.” Severus agreed. They all could see the fork in Harry’s hand shaking every so slightly. He was reaching his limits. “But Draco has work to do.”
“But Father…” Draco protested, frowning. He wasn’t as tired as Harry, but bath and bed sounded divine.
“You need to work on your studies. Soon you will be taking up your duties as Lord.” Severus told him.
Draco looked over at his mother suspiciously, but her face was blank. Had it been filled with triumph, he would have rebelled. As it was, he sighed and glared over at his father mutinously. Severus didn’t seem to mind. Once dinner was done, he led Harry to the bathroom while Narcissa took her son back into the sitting room.
“I’m really getting sick of this room.” Draco smiled ruefully. Harry, he, and Severus (who had taken a temporary leave of absence from his teaching duties until Harry and he mastered Occlumency; Dumbledore had called in a substitute, a Mr. Farris) had been studying there every chance they got.
“Maybe when Severus announces that your training is adequate, I can take you and Harry out.” She offered as she settled into chair.
“I wouldn’t let you take me anywhere.” Draco answered matter-of-factly.
Narcissa flinched and looked away. Draco felt smug, he thought she’d remain remorseful and submissive (as she should!), but she didn’t. She turned back to him and her eyes were hard as diamonds and when she spoke Draco thought he should see her breath, her voice was so cold.
“I disregarded your feelings and wishes, Dragon. I caused you unintentional pain. But look at the situation from my point of view. You are my son. You are the leader and pride of your family. You have wealth and power and privilege. But that is all a second thought to Harry Potter, a boy you use to not be able to stand. I’m aware that things have changed, that you are bonded to him almost as tightly as a twin. I care about Harry. I don’t want to see him hurt. But you are my first priority. Your honor and reputation and your life are all more important to me than your bond to Harry. I would not have acted so if you weren’t as close as you are to him. I acted to save your life.”
“My life was never in danger, Mother.” Draco spat back, finally gathering his courage.
“It was and still is, Dragon, but I know that trying to prevent you from traveling down this fatal course is pointless.”
“You are wrong.” He sneered at her. “You are grasping at reasons to possible justify your behavior. It won’t work.”
“Do you remember the story of Aurora Haidyn?” She asked softly, eyes now on her lap.
“What does that have to do with this?” Draco’s eyes narrowed dangerously, thinking his mother was changing the subject.
“Tell me the story. I promise it has relevance.”
“In 1549, Jeffery Gordon killed her brother to revenge his father and she attacked him. They dueled. It was close, but Jeffery overpowered her. They say he went mad with victory and went into a rut due to how closely she matched him. He ripped the rest of her close off and Desecrated her. She couldn’t fight back. Her magic was too depleted. The Haidyn’s declared Blood Feud with the Gordon’s and they went to war. The Haidyn’s did all they could for Aurora, but she went insane. The best healers of the day could do nothing and in 1550 Aurora’s magic rose up and killed her. The last Gordon perished in 1564, killed by the Haidyn’s.”
“Has anyone survived Desecration?”
“No. Aurora was recorded to have lived the longest after such an act.” Draco waved his hand impatiently with a glare. “What does this have to do with you ignoring my express wish and acting against me?”
“Dragon…” Narcissa’s will seemed to waver and Draco felt dread build in his gut. Why was his mother looking at him like that? “Dragon, you know how we discussed why Harry acts and thinks they way he does? Why he is so afraid?”
“No.” Draco jumped to his feet, his hands clenched into fists. Magic swirled around him, prowling and beginning to wail with his rage and terror. “You go to far, Mother.”
“Harry’s family abused him since he was a child, but when he turned sixteen his Uncle…”
“Don’t say it.” Draco bit out through gritted teeth. “Don’t you say it.”
“His Uncle drugged him to paralyze both is body and magic and Desecrated him.” Narcissa finished in a whisper.
“NO!” Draco roared and his magic struck. But he was blind to his mother’s cry; blind to the destruction of the room around him.
Faded memories were rising in his mind. At first all he could make out was a haunting and cuttingly painful tune: an angel singing, a piano’s ringing cry. Words of pain and despair, of resignation, of death. Green eyes pale and empty within a lifeless body that obeyed orders as a puppet would. Eyes that began to wake when they looked into him only to shut down for a final time. He remembered chanting, offering his magic and his mind in a desperate attempt to heal the fallen angel before him. He couldn’t remember the words, couldn’t even remember if it hurt.
But as soon as these slivers of memory rose they were washed away with vividly clear memories. His Baby laughing with him, playing tag, bathing, eating with him, crying into his shoulder, needing him, holding him, loving him. Baby brushing his hair with magic imbued fingers, mourning him when he was gone, curling around him to sleep. His Harry who was tortured by the evil man far away and smiled at him even through his pain just so he wouldn’t worry.
Harry who filled his heart with an uncomplicated joy that he had never been capable of feeling on his own, who filled him with a love more pure and powerful than he had ever experienced, who knew true terror. His Baby who was finally finding his feet and strength and was beginning to stand up to the pain and horror in the world, who was had finally opened his heart fully to him and their father and gave them the most precious of all gifts: unconditional love.
Even now Draco could feel it like a tiny sun burning in his chest, could feel the heat and magic and strength that Harry had hidden away because of his fear and self-hate. It was finally free and Harry had given it to him and to a lesser degree their father. Draco could feel his Baby coming closer, drawn by his magical outburst. Harry walked through it, parting it gently with his own magic much more powerful than Draco’s could ever be. Draco expected him to try and subdue him, but he didn’t.
Their eyes met and Draco saw worry, love, and acceptance in the emerald depths. Harry didn’t care if he raged, if he lashed out. He just wouldn’t let Draco do it alone. Harry stood at his side, inches away, calmly waiting for him to do what he needed. Draco screamed again with denial. Desecrated. This angel staring at him so openly, ignorant of the atrocities he would wake to in a few weeks time.
Black messy hair, pouty lips, clumsy glasses that couldn’t contain the brilliance of the eyes behind them. A slender body to small and short, testament to the abuse he already suffered, survived, and overcame. Draco was two inches wider, five inches taller, twenty-one pounds heavier and yet Harry was larger on the inside. Draco knew he was only peeking into Harry’s heart through the bond and it filled him up till he was snug inside himself, no extra space or echoes that he could remember from another life.
He admired his Baby’s heart for it was so large, his emotions so damn strong and pure and powerful. There was nothing diluted about them; they weren’t tempered with reason or justifications or rationalizations. Harry should have been cherished, protected, because those same emotions that made him strong and extraordinary also made him fragile. Desecrated. It was blasphemous! It was horrendous! It wasn’t fair! Not Harry, not his Baby!
“Ray.” Harry reached for him and his small hands landed gently on Draco’s cheeks.
Draco could only stare, struck numb with a horror so great, he could only stare at the one who meant the world to him, stare at the one whose soul had been murdered and pulled back by the brink of death to be temporarily caged by the mind and body of a child. His magic was weakening. Not because he felt any more calm, but because he had no more left to strike out at the world with. He was empty. Empty of everything except Harry’s heat still burning unwaveringly in his chest.
“Ray.” Harry repeated again, worry and fear filled his voice as his love reached and blanketed Draco, offering unconscious comfort. Harry wiped away his friend’s silent tears and stared into those grey pools. They were older, aged suddenly by pain and horror. “Was it the bad man? Ray?”
Mute, screaming in his mind and heart, Draco’s hands unclenched and slowly lifted. Long, pale fingers covered Harry’s hands that still rested ever so gently on his cheeks. At the touch, Harry’s thumbs stilled in their job of brushing away his tears. Draco’s fingers closed slowly around Harry’s and pulled the boy’s hands down between them so that they rested just above Draco’s laboring heart. Harry’s eyes widened and splayed flat so that he wouldn’t miss a beat. Green never left gray.
Draco suddenly felt too small. His body didn’t fell right. Suddenly, he was sixteen again with the clarity of age that he hadn’t remembered ever losing. He was aware of mortality. He was aware of what he was going to lose when he looked into his Baby’s face. He looked and understood that he knew nothing of pain yet and it terrified him.
Harry reached for him as he sank to his knees with a helpless whimper. Draco felt his friend hold him, felt Harry sink to the floor with him, and he wanted to scream that Harry was lying! He wouldn’t be there always! He was going to leave him, alone and as broken as Harry ever was.
“Draco!” Harry cried, frightened.
The sound of his true name coming out of his baby’s mouth shocked Draco. He felt Harry’s fear and rising panic. It pushed him into action, though he didn’t know what action to take. All he knew was that even when he was shattered he could not ignore Harry’s call. He found himself hugging the boy back and that seemed to calm his Baby somewhat.
“Harry.” He whispered hoarsely. He meant to say it reassuringly, but instead it was a plea.
“What is it, Ray? Are you hurt?” Harry asked him frantically.
“I love you, Baby.” Draco buried his face into Harry’s shoulder and cried.
Harry looked up at his Dad and Ms. Malfoy. They stood motionless against the wall where they had been shoved by Draco’s magical outburst. He demanded they come help him, but they didn’t move. Narcissa just shook her head as tears fell from her eyes. Severus just said that there was nothing he could do. Draco didn’t stop crying. He’d never seen the blonde like this. Not even the horrible visions had made the arrogant, confident, protective Lord Malfoy breakdown like this. His eyes went back to Ms. Malfoy and they hardened.
“What did you do to him?” He demanded. Anger began to rise in him, like a slow spiral rising up from his belly. He’d never been so angry and he knew it would get worse. He didn’t try to stop it. He wanted answers. He wanted to know what was wrong with his Ray and he would fix it. “Tell. Me. Now.”
Narcissa gasped. She felt the rising magic and knew she was in danger. The submissive, fragile boy before her suddenly took on a new cast in her eyes. For the first time she truly understood that Harry Potter was The-Boy-Who-Lived, the boy who had defeated the Dark Lord twice and survived battling him two more. Before it was words, it was a concept of power, but now she was feeling it first hand and it was terrifying. She looked over at Severus desperately, but the man only had eyes for the boy and ignored her plight.
“TELL ME!” Harry roared. He released Draco and stood. The blonde’s broken cries were slowing, but he was still lying crumpled at Harry’s feet. His grey eyes caught on the boy before him as if mesmerized.
“I did nothing.” Narcissa tried to say. It was the wrong answer.
Green flame rose up out of Harry’s skin. It had no heat, but instead lashed out with pure energy. Narcissa could feel it lapping at her skin from where she stood. Like a breeze made solid, the waves coming off the flame pressed her rhythmically against he wall. Each ripple was getting stronger as the green fire got larger. The flames snaked around Harry’s small form. His glasses shattered and disintegrated, his clothes dissolved into dust and his hair thrashed wildly. But it was his eyes that were the most disturbing. They glowed brighter than the flame. His hands rose and the green flame flowed up his body and down his arms, moving to gather in his palms. Originally the flame had been a rich emerald green, Slytherin green, but as they combined the color lightened and got brighter. Narcissa’s eyes widened as she recognized the exact shade of the killing curse.
“You will never hurt my Draco again.” Harry promised, fury in his voice and eyes.
“Don’t.” Draco gasped as he finally found the strength to stand.
Fighting the rage was hard. It was so bright and hot that he had a hard time telling himself that it wasn’t his anger, telling himself that he wasn’t the one that wanted to destroy. Knowing the strength of that anger, therefore, Draco was surprised when Harry responded and leaned back against him. And then Draco understood.
The anger was so strong because it was supported by love. Harry’s love for him was spiraled around that anger, making it stronger than it could ever have been on its own. Harry was protecting him. Grinning, tears returning to his eyes, Draco leaned down and bowed his head so that it rested on Harry’s shoulder. His blonde hair cascaded around Harry’s shoulders as if it were his own hair. It shimmered in the light of Harry’s protective fury.
“Don’t, Baby. It wasn’t her that hurt me. Let it go, Baby.” Draco murmured and the fire began to retreat, Harry’s hands to lower. But it didn’t go out. It burned just above his skin. “Harry, I’m better now. I… I just… I can’t tell you why I was… upset… But I’m better now.”
Harry shuddered and the fire disappeared. With a choked cry, Harry spun in Draco’s grip and clung to the blonde, his face buried in his chest as he shook from the aftermath of his rage. Draco rocked him, tears gone. His baby’s anger had cleansed him and left behind determination. Harry wasn’t like anyone else. There was no one like him in the past, nor would there be anyone like him in the future. He didn’t care what happened to those who were Desecrated. Harry would not die. His Baby would live. Because Harry had him and because Harry was a survivor.
“Don’t do that ever again, Draco.” Harry said with deadly seriousness, still shaking with his fear and anger and worry. “Never again.”
“I promise.” Draco smiled and bent his head to lay a salty kiss on Harry’s lips. Harry kissed him back, chastely, and fainted with exhaustion. Now it was Draco’s turn to sink to the floor under the weight of another’s body. He looked up at Severus with tired eyes. “A little help here, Dad?”
…
Draco woke the next morning starving. He remembered everything that happened last night, but it was fuzzy. Like a horrible dream. The talk with his mother was even worse, but he suspected that he was just too young to understand. Maybe it had to do with the spell Dumbledore had been telling him and Harry about before the bloody vision that hurt his Baby so badly. In any case, what he did know with one hundred percent clarity was that his Baby might die when the spell was over and he remembered something really, really bad that happened to him and that Draco was determined to prevent that from happening.
“You have wrinkles.” Harry giggled sleepily, bringing up a hand to rub at Draco’s forehead.
“Wrinkles.” Draco sniffed and then grinned. He attacked the smaller boy and tickled him until he begged for mercy. “That’ll teach you to insult a Malfoy!”
“S-s-sorry.” Harry laughed and tried to catch his breath.
“Come on. I’m hungry!” Draco exclaimed and jumped from the bed.
Harry followed more slowly with a happy smile. He wouldn’t ask what happened the night before that upset Draco so badly. He just wanted to forget his friend ever being that broken. But he would keep watch to try and prevent it from ever happening again.
“Hurry up, Baby.” Draco smiled sweetly and Harry picked-up his pace.
…
“Can we stop?” Draco whined and collapsed back against the couch tiredly. His head pounded. They had been working at Occlumency for hours and it was getting close to bed time.
Severus frowned at the boys, but Harry couldn’t see it. The small brunette was sitting in the blonde’s lap completely blind. That didn’t prevent him from working on Occlumency, however, and Severus had insisted they still practice. Both boys looked tired, but Severus couldn’t stop. He couldn’t let the Harry suffer from a vision like that again. It might cause permanent damage or even kill the child. But before he could snap at them to start again, the door opened and the Wolf came in. They hadn’t seen him for days, not since they had fetched Harry from Dumbledore’s office.
“Moony!” Draco cried out in relief. No way would Father make them practice now.
“Moony?” Harry perked up, excited.
“Hey, cub.” Remus smiled tiredly and came over to collapse next to the boys on the couch. “You alright?”
“Blind, but it should be over soon. Right, Father?”
“Yes.” Severus sat back tiredly and rubbed at his face with his long-fingered hands. “The longest blind spell lasted just over three hours and we’re going on two and a half now. It should be over any minute.”
“How are you, Moony? Where were you?” Draco asked curiously, eyeing the man and his filthy clothes and haggard expression.
“I’ve been bolstering ward with other people to protect places from Voldemort.”
Severus hissed at the use of the Dark Lord’s name, but Draco tilted his head curiously. “Voldemort? Is that the evil guy’s name? I wondered why no one would tell me. It’s embarrassing. How can we get beat by a guy with such a ridiculous name?”
Harry laughed and Severus looked about ready to explode. Remus chuckled and cast a soothing look in Severus’ direction. Though it didn’t calm the man, it did keep him silent. That was progress at least.
“So what are you guys doing this weekend?” He asked, changing the subject away from the war.
“Probably practicing till our brain oozes out of our ears.” Draco muttered and hugged Harry tight in an effort to hide his mutinous expression.
“You have to have a brain before it can ooze anywhere.” Severus sneered playfully. “Why don’t you go take Harry to bed? I’ll be in to tuck you in later.”
Draco acted quickly, afraid his father would change his mind. He jumped to his feet, grabbed Harry’s hand, and practically ran from the room, Harry laughing behind him the whole way.
Remus shook his head and cast a stern look at the man across from him, “You’re not torturing those boys are you, Severus?”
“More like torturing myself.” He smiled back, but that quickly faded into a serious expression. Remus sighed. He knew such a nice look wouldn’t last long on the Potions Master’s face. “What’s going on out there, Wolf?”
So Remus obliged by detailing his work for the Aurors. It took a good twenty minutes. Severus had risen during the recounting and fetched him a glass of Firewhisky. Remus sipped at it gratefully. “Where’s Narcissa?” He thought to ask when he was finished.
“She made one mistake too many.” Severus sighed tiredly and to Remus’ surprise came to sit beside him instead of across from him. “She told Draco that Harry had been Desecrated.” Remus gasped and the glass fell through his fingers. Severus caught it and set it aside. “To understand the concept, the spell bent and he regained his sixteen year old mind back for just a few minutes. You can understand that he was very distraught. Harry, of course, didn’t understand what was going on, still being nine, but he knew that Draco was hurting and got very angry. I’ve never seen anything like it. I’m going to have to talk to Albus…”
“What happened?” Remus demanded when the other man trailed off.
“His magic manifested so that we could see it. It was so powerful that the waves it emanated pinned me to the wall despite trying to prevent it. I don’t think he knew what he was doing, but he summoned a wandless Killing Curse.”
“What?” Remus paled. “That’s impossible.”
“Not anymore.” Severus answered grimly. “In any case, Draco stopped him before it got that far. Then they both fainted from exhaustion. I’ve been teaching them Occlumency and that on top of everything else was just too much. When Draco woke up, his child-mind had suppressed the more far-reaching concepts that he had learned the night before. All that’s left is the knowledge that Harry might die when the spell ends and that he will stop that from happening.”
“How will he do that?” Remus asked shakily.
“By demanding it to be so.” Severus sneered and then shrugged. “All that matters to me is that he is no longer despairing.”
Remus sat silently for a while. “Do you think… Do you think Harry will make it?”
“Yes. He will.” Severus answered with certainty.
“How do you know?” Remus demanded, fear and pain in his amber eyes.
Severus held their gaze and whispered, “Because I cannot bare the alternative.”
“And Narcissa?” Remus asked, looking away with a blush.
“Draco sent her away.” Severus stood. “I recommended she not return until Monday and the boys have aged a year. Maybe the extra maturity will keep her son from killing her.”
…
The weekend passed with no further disturbances. Severus made the boys practice Occlumency for hours everyday, Remus would intervene before Draco’s temper could snap or Harry could collapse, they had meals together, played, and told stories. Harry didn’t have anymore seizures and Severus gave him the last doses of his potions, announcing Harry was healed. All four went to bed Sunday night hoping the next week would be free from disasters.
Why did I choose the name Desecration? It is a play on the use of the term Unforgivables. These curses are unforgivable and so are named such. In my story, rape is even worse than these and therefore I choose a term for it that would express that horror. I chose desecration because rape destroys and befouls the person’s soul and ruins their relationship with their magic, thus killing them.
Will Harry die in the end? No, he won’t die. But it will be close.
Will it be Severus/Remus? Yes, as the votes swung heavily in that favor. I won’t be dismissing Sirius completely though and I warn you now that the end of this chapter has Severus and Remus finally getting together. It is graphic, but I don’t think it goes over the M or R rating.
What about Narcissa? She will be coming back soon. She just needed time to come to terms with everything, but Draco will give her the cold shoulder for a while until he really believes she won’t try and separate or hurt them again. I personally don’t see her as a bad guy. She was just a distraught mother fearing for her child’s life. I mean, Harry is in a bad state and being so bonded to another, even without the whole Voldemort and Desecration thing, is not the most comfortable of notions. Especially to Slytherins who pride their independence and power over others and self-control.
What about Dumbledore? He is going to try and make Harry into his weapon, but he does care about Harry’s overall well being and won’t do anything to severely hurt him. He will be a bad good guy, I guess. I think he will try to get the boys to trust him as much as they trust Severus, but I don’t think he will do anything too drastic as he is afraid of losing the boys’ trust completely.
Chapter Seventeen
Harry woke with a smile. He was really warm and something was softly running down his cheek. Opening his eyes, he smiled as he found Draco propped up beside him smiling. The white blonde curtain of hair was draped over his shoulder and pooling behind and between them. Harry curled his fingers in it sleepily and closed his eyes again.
“Well? Aren’t you going to tell me?” Draco demanded, but Harry could hear the playfulness in his voice and knew his friend wasn’t really mad.
“Maybe.” He smirked and cuddled deeper into the blankets around him.
“Oh. I see how it is.” Draco huffed and flopped down on his back, crossing his arms over his chest as he glared up at the ceiling. “Now I have to think of an appropriate punishment for denying the all-important Lord of the Malfoy Family.”
Harry giggled and slapped his chest playfully, green eyes bright and happy. “Don’t be a prat. There’s not much to say anyway. I remember my cousin being a bully and tons of chores and no friends at school and being put in the cupboard, but Uncle Vernon didn’t hit me once. He’s still afraid my magic will get him if he does it again. Things are going rather well at home.”
Draco turned to face him and with his free arm gently brushed the wild black hair from Harry’s face. “Baby, you know that all that isn’t really okay, right? Even though things are better at home now, doesn’t mean it’s alright or that you should be happy about it.”
“I know, Ray.” Harry promised. “Really. I do know that now. But why think about it? I’m here with you and Dad and Moony. It doesn’t matter anymore.”
Draco smiled and kissed his friend chastely before getting up out of bed. “Maybe we can go flying. I can’t wait to show you! I found this great Quidditch book when Mother took me away and I’ve forgotten to show it to you with everything that’s going on, but we’ll have time today. If we team up, we could even talk Dad into letting us go out.”
“We’d have a better chance if we wait for whenever Dad goes back to work and ask Moony then.” Harry suggested as he pulled on the clothes Draco handed to him.
“Good idea.” Draco smiled mischievously. That melted into true amusement as he looked over at his smaller friend. “You hardly need a sizing charm on these clothes, but I can barely get them on.”
“That’s cause you’re getting fat.” Harry sniffed.
“Am not! You’re just too skinny!” Draco protested, outraged.
Harry laughed and ran from the room. Draco followed, yelling threats, though his sparkling eyes told anyone who cared to look that he wasn’t really angry. He was too happy to be upset. It was hard to be angry when his Harry was filling him with genuine good humor. This was how Harry should always feel.
“What are you two up to?” Remus asked as he smiled down at the boy who crashed into him.
He lifted Harry into his lap and had to hide a frown at how light and small Harry still was. Draco skidded to a stop and glared up at them with mock fury. The blonde had grown, Remus noticed, and subtly cast a sizing charm on the little Lord. The blonde flashed a quick grin then returned to berating the smaller boy in his lap. Harry tried to look remorseful and properly chastised, but was having a hard time stifling his giggles behind his hands.
Severus came to the kitchen table and ran his eyes over the scene. Harry was sitting in Remus’ lap and Draco was giving a sound scolding to the brunette. Remus was smiling at Draco and giving reproachful glances to Harry at the same time. Eventually, Draco ran out of steam and self-control and burst out laughing. Harry broke down too and Remus looked over at him with exasperated, joyful eyes.
“They’re in a mood this morning.” The Wolf offered as an explanation.
“I can see that.” Severus sighed and took his seat. “I think I’m grateful that I must return to class, dealing with those two when they’re like this is exhausting.”
“You are?” Remus said and was surprised at the disappointment he heard in his own voice. He blushed and looked down at his food.
Severus felt warmth twist in his chest at the other man’s reaction, but pushed it away. “Yes. Professor Farris will be on call so that he will be here when needed, but the Headmaster doesn’t want me missing more classes than I have to.” The boys exchanged a glance and he narrowed his eyes at them. “That doesn’t mean you get to slack off on your work. You will do as Remus says, and if I hear otherwise, I will be severely disappointed.”
Harry looked at him with wide, solemn eyes, but Draco only smiled innocently and said, “Yes, Father.” Remus smiled and was almost able to hide his amusement from the dark-eyed man across from him, but Severus was too observant.
“I mean it, Wolf. Don’t let these boys play all day.” He said sternly.
“I won’t, Severus.” Remus shook his head, not bothering to hide his smile this time. “We’ll be good. Promise.”
Severus fought the blush from his cheeks and nodded sharply. These three were going to be the death of him.
…
Remus was watching Harry work on his science and math. Draco was in the corner studying from one of his own books. He, not being a pureblood let alone Head of a Family, had no idea what the blonde should be studying so he left Draco to his own devices, which seemed to suit the small Lord Malfoy well. He frowned as he remembered the trip to the infirmary that morning so that Poppy could make sure there had been no complications.
Poppy had told him that the damage to Harry had been corrected as much as it could be and that the child would continue to get better as time passed, but Harry would still grow fatigued faster than normal and he’d have to let the boy take naps when this happened. She merely shook her head when he questioned her about the brunette’s petite stature.
“I can’t correct that. Severus and I agree that Harry is following his original growth rate. Nothing can be done.”
That hadn’t made him happy at all. Next to the tall, strong, and healthy Draco, Harry’s small size was disheartening and with every year they aged it was only growing more apparent. It was infuriating, especially since he knew what made Harry this way. He growled just thinking about it. If he EVER ran into those godforsaken Dursleys…
“Moony?” Harry asked, looking up from his worksheet.
Remus smiled and ruffled his soft hair. “You’re doing well, Harry. Keep it up. You’re almost done.”
The boy smiled and bent back to work. He looked over and saw that Draco was watching him knowingly. Remus shifted uncomfortably under that stare and returned to his thoughts. Poppy had marked down that Harry stood at only four feet three inches and weighed a measly sixty-nine pounds. Draco was only three inches short of five foot and weighed ninety-seven and a half pounds.
Despite what Poppy said, he had offered to stop at the kitchens after the exam to get the boys some food, but they both denied being hungry. Remus noticed Draco had waited to say anything until Harry had. He suspected the blonde was just as eager to get some weight on Harry as he was. That was a relief. If anyone was going to get Harry to do something he didn’t want to, it would be the young Lord Malfoy.
He smiled fondly down at Harry. He was really glad at the boy’s strong personality finally emerging. When he sent Draco a questioning glance about Harry’s confidence and cheerfulness, the blonde had answered that he wasn’t hit at home anymore. Remus was astounded at how much that made a difference. He was sure he’d have crumpled under half as much way before now. He knew he would never have made it against the abuse brought down on him due to his own curse if it hadn’t been for his mother loving and supporting him. And Harry had no one until now.
“I’m done, Moony.” Harry held up his work proudly.
“Good job. Let me check it over for you.” He took the paper. Harry beamed with joy when he handed it back with none marked wrong.
“I’m tired of working.” Draco said as he stretched. Remus looked up at him suspiciously. “Moony, can we go out flying?”
“You know we can’t. It isn’t safe.” He said sadly as he shook his head.
“We’ve been at this for hours.” Draco whined.
“Only two.” Remus laughed.
“I’d really like to go outside.” Harry said softly, looking up at his friend through his eye-lashes shyly.
“Ooooh, no fair.” Remus mock moaned and covered his eyes. “You know I can’t.”
“Please, Moony!” Draco came over and added his own pleading look. “We need some exercise and lunch is in a few hours. It’s not like we’d be out long.”
Remus was seriously starting to cave and scrambled for some ideas. Finally he hit on just the thing. “I know just what to do. Come on.”
…
“Where are we going?” Neville asked as he followed after Ron. They had been in Charms when the redhead had gotten his and Hermione’s attention and said to follow him. Hermione wouldn’t leave the class early, but Neville had gone along. What was the last half-hour anyway?
“The Room of Requirement.” Ron answered.
“Why? And who were you writing too?”
“Crabbe and Goyle, and you’ll see.” He smiled.
“Harry and Draco are out of the dungeons?” Neville perked up. “We should get Ginny.”
“No.” Ron shook his head. “We can’t draw too much attention to ourselves or we’ll get in trouble.”
Neville just looked at him doubtfully. They reached the right corridor and found Crabbe, Goyle, and Parkinson walked toward them from the other side. Ron scowled, “I thought I said to keep this secret?”
“We had a free period and she followed us.” Crabbe shrugged dumbly.
“What’s happened?” Goyle asked.
Ron crossed his arms and refused to speak. Neville stood nervously beside him.
“Oh, come on.” Pansy huffed and tossed her hair over her shoulder. “What’s it gonna hurt if I know?”
“Everything. I’m not telling you anything, Snake. So get lost. I’m sure these two can tell you about it all later.”
“Ron…” Neville warned as he watched the girl’s eyes light with fury.
“No. It’s alright, Longbottom.” She hissed. “I can take care of myself.”
With that, she turned and stomped away. Crabbe and Goyle exchanged a look and adopted grateful expressions. Ron preened at that and made his way over to a blank wall. Neville had seen the brief spark of intelligence though and he hung back so he could watch the two Slytherin Sixth Years more closely.
“They’re in here.” The redhead explained as he paced in front of the wall.
The blondes were about to say something about that when a door appeared and Ron opened it. Their mouths shut with a snap and Ron smirked at them, gesturing grandly for them to enter first. Neville followed and shook his head as he passed his friend. Ron ignored him and shut the door.
The room looked like a grassy field. There were only four trees and they marked out the rooms boundaries (which was as large as the room could get; about 300 square feet), making the rest of the sight an illusion. But the sun in the blue sky felt real and the warm wind shifted their hair and clothes. Above them, they heard laughter and looked up to see Draco, Harry, and Professor Remus flying on brooms.
“Greg! Vince!” The blonde waved at seeing them. “Come on up! We could put on a mini-game!”
“Don’t have a broom!” Crabbe yelled back.
“Just wish for one.” Ron told them and snickered at the dumbfounded looks they sent his way when a broom just appeared in his hand. With a whoop of joy, he entered the sky. Neville followed next, but going significantly slower.
Harry was better with the whole fear-of-strangers thing, but they still made him uncomfortable and shy. Therefore he flew up to the blonde and asked quietly if he could be on his team.
Draco took one hand from his broom and wrapped it around his shoulders, “Of course you’re on my team.”
“I’ll be referee.” Remus offered. “Neville, Ron, and Gregory on one team. Draco, Harry, and Vincent on the other.”
They all agreed and the game began. The teams were surprisingly well-matched. Harry had never (in his memory) flown before, but Neville was hardly any better. Draco was almost as good as Ron and Greg and Vince were evenly matched. Still, Draco’s team was loosing half-an-hour later. Harry was panting over his broom and his hands had begun to tremble. Draco called a time-out and flew over to him.
“I think I need a break.” Harry smiled tentatively. He was sorry for stopping their fun, but he knew pushing himself until he fell would make Draco a thousand times more upset. The blonde nodded easy agreement and Harry looked around wistfully. “I don’t really want to go in yet, though.”
“Alright.” Draco nodded and gestured Remus over. The amber-eyed man came obediently. “Will you take Harry’s place on the team? He needs a few minutes to rest.”
“Maybe we should go in.” The man frowned worriedly.
“It’s doing him good to be here.” Draco argued. “Lying out on the grass will be peaceful and he will get some rest.”
“Alright, but let us know if you want to go in.” Remus conceded.
“I will, Moony. Promise.” Harry hugged him and flew down to the ground.
“I can go down with him.” Neville offered when he saw his de-aged friend leave the game.
“No. Remus will take his place.” Draco waved the offer away. “Now come on! I’m gonna win now!”
“In your dreams, Malfoy!” Ron laughed and did a competitive little turn in the air.
The game continued and Draco’s team began to make a come-back. Harry smiled as he listened to Draco’s gleeful triumph after every score and his barked orders to the other players. His eyes drooped closed and soon he was fast asleep.
…
“Can I help you, Headmaster?” Severus asked as he entered Dumbledore’s office.
“I just thought it would be nice to have a private lunch so we could discuss some things.” The old man smiled with bright twinkling eyes. He gestured for the other man to have a seat and waved his hand so that his desk was cleared off. Another wave brought plates of food. Severus hesitated, but in the end took the seat. “I began to teach the boys how to duel. They were coming along nicely. I think it would be a good idea to continue to practice. Say, after your last class you can bring them up here?”
“You taught them to duel?” Severus hadn’t been told this, though he couldn’t blame Draco for that. He had been preoccupied with Harry’s illness and the vision.
“I did.” Dumbledore nodded and took a bite of his sandwich. Severus followed his lead. “Harry is remarkably strong. He did all the spells wandlessly and held his own against Draco when the little Lord was armed.”
“Wandless.” Severus repeated, though he wasn’t surprised after what he had seen him almost do to Narcissa. The boy was incredibly strong. Stronger than he remembered him being before the spell de-aged him.
“Yes. I’ve been thinking about that.” Dumbledore said thoughtfully.
Severus jumped. He hadn’t realized he had spoken out-loud. He narrowed his eyes, certain he hadn’t. With a sneer, he strengthened his mental barriers. Subtle, snooping, conniving old man, he thought, confident the man couldn’t hear his surface thoughts anymore.
“I think that ten years with the Dursleys made Harry fear his magic in such a way that he bound it to him and locked a huge portion of it away. He couldn’t lock all of it away of course and that was what leaked and did his accidental magic.” He leaned back with a smile. “Now that he has returned to those years and was guided into respecting and priding his magical ability, he never locked it away. All his magic is free now. This could be the power that the Dark Lord knows not.”
Severus tensed. Damn that prophecy. Damn the Dark Lord. And double damn Albus Dumbledore. “Sir, he is a child. I stick by the belief that it is foolish to expect a child to save us.”
“And I tell you again that Harry will not be fighting alone, but we can’t change his destiny. We can only prepare him for it and protect him as much as we can.” Dumbledore sighed. “You will bring him up for lessons?”
It wasn’t really a question and Severus nodded. Besides, the old man had said to bring the boys up when he was done with his classes. At least he’d be in the room if anything happened. And he did want Harry and Draco to be able to defend themselves. Dumbledore needed to be watched, but if he could teach the boys how to survive than Severus wasn’t going to stand in the way.
…
Harry was still asleep when the Quidditch game came to an end and Draco said he was hungry. The blonde said goodbye to his Slytherin friends and smiled superiorly at the defeated redhead. Neville had congratulated him, so he deemed it better of him not to rub the chubby boy’s face in his defeat as he was doing to the fuming redhead.
Yes. It had been a good day. He followed Remus back down to the dungeons under the Invisibility Cloak while the werewolf cradled the sleeping Harry in his arms. They got back down to the dungeons and Harry woke to eat. He didn’t wake up all the way until Draco suggested redecorating the playroom. It was too baby-ish, he complained. Remus agreed, laughing, and the boys had a ball changing the colors of the room and getting rid of old toys that no longer interested them.
By the time Severus got back, the room had a ceiling and walls that reflected the outside weather. Men and woman on brooms and randomly colored robes flew around playing Quidditch. The boys liked to run around trying to tag certain figures and discussing the moves watched them perform. The carpet was still a rich, grass green.
The toy chest was still there, but was stripped of paint, leaving behind its natural wood color. Their favorite toys were put up in it, but over half had been given to Remus to get rid of. Two matching desks for their school work sat side-by-side and an art easel stood in the corner for Harry who requested lessons. Draco preferred music and had spelled box to play the most popular music whenever he tapped it with his wand. (Well, tap it with Harry’s wand, really. He still hadn’t been given his old one and Harry’s worked better than perfectly for him anyways.)
“Well, well.” Severus smiled as he looked around the room.
“Do you like it?” Harry asked, running up for a hug.
Severus bent and easily lifted him up onto his hip. “I do. You two are growing up with quite the sophisticated tastes.”
“Of course we are.” Draco sniffed haughtily and crossed his arms.
Harry giggled and Remus laughed. Draco glared at them both and stalked elegantly from the room. Severus followed him to the dinning table with a smile. He placed Harry in his chair and went to sit in his own. Once they were all seated, food appeared on their table.
“Is Mother coming?” Draco asked, unconcerned.
“Do you wish to see her? I told her I’d contact her when you were ready.” Severus answered.
“Not yet, then.” He answered and served himself.
“After dinner, the Headmaster would like to continue teaching you to duel, if that is alright?” He looked at Harry. “If you are tired, I can reschedule.”
“I’m fine.” Harry smiled. “I took a nap today after flying.”
“Flying?” Severus raised an eyebrow and stared coolly at the werewolf across from him. Remus blushed and looked at his plate.
“We didn’t go outside!” Harry rushed to inform him. “Moony didn’t do anything bad!”
“Then where did you fly? Certainly not in here.” Severus drawled.
“We went to a magic room that grants you what you wish.” Draco answered. “And stop looking like that. We really needed it and look at Harry. He’s never looked better!”
It was true. The boy had color in his face and his eyes were free of shadows for the first time in many weeks. Severus conceded, but couldn’t give in gracefully and decided to bicker with the young Lord for several more minutes. Harry could tell his father wasn’t mad anymore and smiled over at Remus who winked back. Giggling, he finished his dinner to the sounds of the “aristocratic discussion” as Draco called it. He decided he really loved his family.
…
Harry and Draco learned spells and dueled for three hours. Severus had wanted to call a halt twice, but the headmaster talked him out of it. Severus regretted retreating and promised to put his foot down next time when Harry fell asleep twice in the bath. Draco was tired too, but had managed to remain awake until his head hit the pillow.
He sighed as he tucked the boys in. Guess they wouldn’t need a bedtime story. He was just glad he wouldn’t have to grade the written tests or homework for his Potions classes and could go straight to bed himself. Dumbledore had told Farris that was his job while he remained on staff. He went to the sitting room and poured himself a drink. Remus was sitting on the couch by the fire, a book in his lap.
“How did it go? Were either of them injured?” He asked.
“No. They did really well. Draco is only a bit more powerful than Harry and he picks up spells faster. I think that’s because he half-remembers them and Harry is learning for the first time.” Severus sat by the amber-eyed man instead of across from him. He smirked inwardly when the Wolf didn’t shift to put more distance between them. He sighed and leaned back, letting his hair fall away from his face.
“Why is Draco stronger?” Remus asked softly. He didn’t want to disturb the dark-eyed man’s rest.
“He is equipped with a wand, and Harry’s wand at that.” Severus took a sip. “Harry may never need to use it again. Though it could come in handy. It is the brother to the Dark Lord’s.”
“I wish you wouldn’t say that.” Remus’ eyes bore into the other’s face. The dark eyes opened and stared back. “I hate hearing that name from you.”
“What would you prefer?” Severus asked softly, without a sneer.
Remus blushed at hearing the smooth, silky voice, but didn’t turn his eyes away. “Say Voldemort or, if that is impossible, He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named or You-Know-Who. Harry believes that to refuse to say his name makes Voldemort more powerful.”
“That’s the Headmaster talking.” Severus sneered and looked into the fire. “In general, that belief is true, but in my case… I can’t say his name without causing myself pain.”
“Severus.” Remus reached out for his hand, offering comfort. Severus let him. “I can’t even imagine… the strength it took to turn your back… and offer yourself as a sacrifice in order to help us defeat this madman.”
“No you don’t.” He said softly. “But I don’t expect you to understand, Remus.”
The werewolf’s breath caught at hearing his name come out of the other’s mouth so easily. His hand tightened around Severus’ and a surprisingly gentle smile spread across the man’s thin lips. “I think we’ve come far enough to use our names with each other. Though I will always think of you as a Wolf.”
Remus flinched and tried to yank his hand away, but Severus wouldn’t let it go.
“I use to be afraid of what that meant. And that was the root of my animosity toward you. I can admit that now.” He leaned closer. “I can also admit that the fear has turned into respect. As much as you can’t understand the road I’ve walked, I can’t understand yours.”
Remus stared deep into the other’s eyes and felt his heart begin to beat fiercely. He understood. He understood that Severus Snape saw the strength he possessed to continue passed everything he had endured and he knew that he returned that respect completely. But he wasn’t sure he could give more than that. Give that extra bit more that he saw in those dark bottomless eyes. He smiled. It was a painful expression. Of all the people he had thought himself in danger of seeing that expression from Severus Snape wasn’t one of them. He stood and walked quickly to the fire, wrapping his arms around himself as laughing blue eyes and wild black hair filled his mind’s eye.
Severus watched his back for a minute. Calming himself as the embarrassment, desire, rejection, and anger slowly gave way and he took control of himself once again. What was he thinking? How could he say all that… sentimental drivel! It wasn’t like he wanted anything from this… man-beast… in front of him. He was just tired! Pretending to have a child was breaking him apart; turning him into someone he wasn’t.
He stood and made his way to his bedroom. Grimly, he thought he wouldn’t have to cope with all these new weaknesses for much longer. Once Harry remembers… Once that happened… He’d be a father no more. Harry would never want him. Closing his eyes against unwelcome pain, he pushed open his door. Hating himself, uncertain, angry…. A hand on his arm halted his progress and his eyes snapped open.
“Severus, don’t.” Remus pleaded in a whisper. “I know… I know what it feels like to be afraid of losing everyone you love. I know what it feels like to be absolutely alone, and I know the fear of opening up and allowing yourself to be vulnerable to loss once again. I know because I’ve been in both positions. I… I lost everyone. I lost my friends, my Pack, my cub. I wandered alone for years. Then Harry came to Hogwarts and I followed. Sirius came back to me and… and we became lovers. He was… He was my first. Do you understand? He wasn’t interested in men, but that filthy prison shattered him and we needed each other to heal… And then I lost him. He’s never coming back and if it weren’t for Harry… If it weren’t for him, I wouldn’t be standing here. Do you know why?”
Severus could say nothing. He was trapped in the other man’s passionate and pained, tearful amber eyes.
“Because… because I will not survive being alone again. Not after truly understanding what it means to have a family and a lover. It is more unbearable to be alone than it is to live with the fear of losing the ones you do have. So… please… please don’t lock yourself away again now that you’ve found something to fear losing. Have faith that Harry will stick with you and don’t push him away thinking you’ll be better and safer alone. Please, trust me when I say that you will only find that you’ve made everything worse.”
Severus looked away. He couldn’t. He couldn’t admit to needing anything, let alone needing someone. He cared for Harry, but Harry needed him more than he needed Harry (or at least that’s what he told himself). But this sudden confusion surrounding this other man couldn’t be explained away or given excuses. He wouldn’t let himself be made vulnerable.
He pulled his arm out of the other man’s grip and shut the door. It wasn’t like he had proposed anything. The Wolf had taken everything out of proportion. He cared nothing about him or his past with the mangy mutt. He was being friendly for Harry’s sake nothing more. That speech was useless and unnecessary. With a deep frown, he gulped down a sleeping potion and collapsed into bed.
Outside his door, Remus Lupin sat heavily on the couch and cried into his hands. He felt the connection that was growing between them and, just like Severus, he was fighting it. He was fighting it because his first love still haunted his mind and heart, and he didn’t think he could love like that again. He wasn’t sure if that would be fair to his second partner or to Sirius. But he believed what he said that being alone was worse. He wanted a companion to care for, protect, and support. Confused, lonely, and mourning the loss of his friends and lover, he cried himself to sleep.
…
The week passed quickly due to the happiness that surrounded it. Harry and Draco worked on their Occlumency and academic studies in the morning after breakfast. Then they went flying after lunch and only came back to the room when Severus’ classes finished. Different Gryffindors and Slytherins always met up with them. Draco preferred his Slytherin friends, but was growing fond of Ginny and Neville. Ron and Hermione were annoying and he didn’t like the way they sometimes stared at Harry.
Harry’s opinion ran really close to his blonde friend’s, except he didn’t like Pansy all that much. She was too clingy and argumentative, and her voice was very like Petunia’s. Everyday he had to stop flying so that he could take a two hour nap and always woke back in their quarters when their father got back and had dinner.
Dueling and magic lessons came after that and the boys had great fun, especially when Dumbledore let them team up against him instead of against each other. No matter what anyone else said, they just couldn’t put their all into a fight against each other. What if they accidentally got hurt? The thought was too horrible for both of them and they only threw mild curses and charms at each other. Their father never let them get as tired as they had the first night, but Harry still fell asleep almost as soon as he was in bed. Draco faired better and was able to stay up for a story.
But the boys were the only ones blissfully happy. Severus and Remus walked around tense and tried hard to avoid each other as much as they could. It wasn’t very hard during the day since they were busy with the boys and doing separate things, but at night it was hard to escape the other’s company. Severus could only handle a few minutes of this before fleeing to his room and his sleeping potions. Remus didn’t cry at night again, but he often stayed up staring into the fire pensively until he was pulled into troubled dreams. Neither knew how to stop the attraction that had formed between them, nor had the strength to act on it.
…
Saturday morning came and the boys got dressed and went to breakfast as they did every morning. Their father and Remus were already seated and this made the boys suspicious. Usually their father didn’t come to breakfast till later. Harry smiled and hugged them both before taking his seat, while Draco just gave them good-morning.
“Since I don’t have classes today, I’ll be staying with you.” Severus began as the food appeared.
“You mean you don’t have to do homework?” Harry asked excitedly. He loved spending time with his father and on the weekends he usually had to take time out to grade things and stuff.
“No. I don’t have homework.” Severus smiled. “Professor Farris is doing it for me.”
Draco snickered, “Father, I thought cheating is bad.”
“Only when you are caught. And I’m not cheating.” Severus glared.
“What are we going to do today?” Harry interrupted.
“I’d like to talk to you about things you will remember come Sunday night.” Severus answered seriously.
“I’m coming too!” Draco said immediately, not liking the implication that he wasn’t invited.
“You may come, but I will want to talk to Harry privately later.” Severus said sternly.
Draco pouted, but let it be.
…
The boys were curled up against their father’s side on the couch in the sitting room. Remus had excused himself, but Severus stopped him. Severus told himself he had requested the Wolf to stay only because he had a right to know what Harry did and had nothing to do with needing support. He tightened his arms around Harry and avoided looking at the man across from him. Would this weekend be the last? Would Harry’s First Year be enough to renew the boy’s hatred for him?
“Father?” Draco asked curiously. “Aren’t you going to start the story?”
Severus nodded. “As you know, you will turn eleven Sunday night and when you wake up you will remember everything that happened to you during your eleventh year. As Draco may know, eleven is a special age in which you get invited to go to a magical school to learn all about your abilities and gifts.”
“But we’ve already started learning.” Harry questioned.
“That is because you two are special.” Remus smiled at him.
“We know that much already.” Draco sneered playfully. Harry hit him with a giggle.
“I feel that it would be wise to prepare you for your next set of memories.” Severus continued, ignoring them. “I’m afraid they are going to be very surprising, Harry.”
“What do you mean? Do I not get to go to school? Do I stay with the Dursley’s?” Harry asked wide-eyed.
“No. You come to school, but you also find out the truth about your past.” Severus sighed. “Remus told you that your parents were killed, but wouldn’t answer you when you asked by whom. I’m going to answer that question now.”
Harry nodded, tears filling his eyes. Draco reached across his father and clasped the small boy’s hand in his own. Harry squeezed it tight, gratefully. Remus often told them about Harry’s first parents, to the point where the two boys (especially Harry) almost felt like they knew them. Being reminded of their horrible deaths wasn’t going to be easy, but Harry really did want to know so he steeled himself and looked up at his father unflinchingly.
“Harry, your mother and father were fighting in a war against very bad people. The evil man in the visions you and Draco see is the leader of those bad people and when you were a baby you hurt the bad man very badly. That makes you very special. They gave you the title The-Boy-Who-Lived and for ten years the Dark Lord was gone and we had peace. But the Dark Lord wasn’t truly dead and he started trying to make himself a never-dying body when you turned eleven. Do you understand so far?”
The green-eyed child was clinging to his father tightly, his eyes wide and horrified, but very clearly aware. He did have questions, but his throat was too tight to ask them. Draco swallowed hard. He had known this story, but it was different hearing his father tell it and having his baby’s sharp emotions clawing at his chest. But he knew what Harry needed to know and would be strong and ask those questions for him.
“How did Harry beat him? How did his parents die?”
Severus looked at him questioningly. He wanted Harry to ask, but the look on Draco’s face told him not to push. “There are three very Unforgivable curses. One causes great pain; one takes over the mind of the victim leaving them helpless and at the spell-caster’s mercy; the last Unforgivable kills the person instantly. It is called the Killing Curse. The Dark Lord used it on both James and Lily Potter. He then turned to use it on Harry, but it bounced off of him and hit the Dark Lord, destroying his body, leaving behind the lightning shaped scar.”
Harry buried his face into his father’s chest and cried. Draco huddled closer and shivered as silent tears ran down his cheeks. Remus couldn’t stand it and threw himself onto the floor at Severus’ feet so that he could reach both boys. He rubbed their backs and soothed their hair as he crooned to them. Severus held tightly to the boys and watched him through blank eyes that hid his internal pain. Eventually, Harry calmed and Remus climbed up onto the couch beside him.
“What happened after I found this out?” The green-eyed child asked tiredly, looking back up at his father.
“You were taken from the Dursleys and found out about your fame and a little about your parents. You came to the Wizarding World and everyone was in awe of you. They wanted photos and to stare and talk to you. A lot of people thought you were a spoiled and pampered hero.” Severus took a deep breath. “I was a spy for Dumbledore. I was once a Death Eater, but I turned away from them and Dumbledore asked me to continue so that I could bring him information that saved many people. It was very hard, but I agreed because I needed to atone for all the very bad things I did….
“Because of this, I wasn’t allowed to befriend you. You were my Master’s enemy and we knew the Dark Lord would be back eventually. I had to create an alibi so that the Dark Lord would accept me back and my animosity toward you was that key. But I took it farther than I had to because I dislike arrogance and was certain you would be arrogant because of your first father and because of your celebrity status. I said cruel things to you and I treated you unfairly.”
“I think I remember that.” Draco said slowly. “But I also remember you saving Harry. He almost fell from his broom, didn’t he? But you saved him? I remember being disappointed. I wanted Harry to get hurt. I was mad at him for refusing to be my friend. I didn’t understand why he was being mean to me so I was mean back.” He looked over at the shocked Harry. “I don’t think you liked us all that much.”
“I… I didn’t like you? You were mean to me?” Harry asked in a small voice.
“That’s why I wanted to tell you before you remember.” Severus grabbed the boy and pulled him into his lap and held him to his chest. “I want you to know that we care for each other and we’re a family. What you are about to remember is really the past even though it won’t feel that way to you at first. Things have changed between us as we came to understand the truths that we hid from each other. These past weeks weren’t a lie, Harry. This is the truth now and our relationship is stronger because it overcame so much.”
“I love you, Baby.” Draco wrapped himself around him. “I’m really sorry for what I did. I just wanted you to notice me and be sorry for sending me away and choosing the side of someone who hates me. That redhead, I think. He hated me and always has and you wanted to be his friend and not mine. But that doesn’t mean what I did was okay, because it is never okay to hurt you. I was very wrong. I’m sorry, Baby. Don’t hate me again! Please, don’t hate me!”
Harry launched himself out of his father’s arms and held Draco tight. “I don’t hate you! I could never hate you, Ray! Don’t cry. Please. I’m sorry I didn’t choose you, but it’ll be alright. I love you and Daddy and Moony and no matter what I remember I won’t forget how much you took care of me and loved me and saved me from the Dursleys.”
Severus held the crying children as he closed his eyes tight. He hoped Harry was right, but he couldn’t really bring himself to believe it. He remembered quite clearly the things he said and did to Harry and knowing the truth to how he grew up made his actions all the more horrific. It didn’t matter that he was there to stop Quirrell from killing the boy. That did nothing to excuse his malicious hatred for the innocent child he was hurting.
“Daddy?” Harry asked softly, still wrapped in both Draco’s and Severus’ arms. “You said… you said you were mean because I was a celebrity and you didn’t know that the Dursleys were mean, but you said that it was cause of my first father, too. What did you mean?”
Remus looked to the dark-eyed man and knew Severus wouldn’t be able to answer. He leaned over and smiled sadly into Harry’s face. “Your first father went to school with Severus. He was in the same grade, but they were in different Houses. Hogwarts has four Houses and Gryffindor and Slytherin have the biggest rivalry. They always want to beat the other really, really badly. So James and his friends, including me and Sirius, picked on the Slytherins, especially Severus because he was the smallest and he never fought back. Severus would always get his revenge after we made fun of him or pranked him, and wouldn’t do anything while we were being mean. That made him seem like an easy target.”
“We didn’t like each other.” Severus interrupted harshly. He didn’t want to talk about this and he didn’t want Harry to know the extent of that hatred. “We both did things that made each other mad and we were… rivals. I thought you would be like your father because you look so much like him. So I lashed out in petty anger.”
“My first father hurt you lots?” Harry wouldn’t let it go and his large eyes filled with more tears.
“We were children and being stupid.” He brushed Harry’s tears away. “Don’t think I am an innocent victim. I wasn’t. And I hurt your father too. And worse, I hurt you, Harry. I’m very regretful of that now, but that isn’t going to change what you are going to remember. I wanted you to know all this and to know that I am sorry.”
Harry nodded and bit his lip. “You… you love me now, right, Daddy?”
“I do. You are my son. Even if you don’t want me to be your father, I will always see you as my child.” Severus stood and cleared his throat, obviously done with the emotional subjects. Harry reached up for him with a teary smile and he lifted the small child onto his hip. “Let’s go flying for a bit. You two said you wanted to show me.”
“Yes.” Draco forced a smile and got to his feet. “You should see us race and Harry is really good at catching the snitch!”
Remus followed after, doing his best to help Draco cover up the awkward moment and to make them all forget what could possibly come to happen Sunday night.
…
The weekend passed and no one brought up the topic of the returning memories again. Instead they spent every moment they could together having fun. They played, flied, painted, danced, and ate their favorite meals. Severus made them practice Occlumency and dueling, but only for a couple hours. Severus tucked them in every night and read them bed time stories. It was the best weekend yet.
…
“Baby? Are you awake?” Draco whispered. Their father had left and both were suppose to be sleeping. But the blonde was too afraid of what the morning might bring and couldn’t sleep.
“Yeah?” Harry answered groggily and turned over to face his friend.
“I… I’m… well, don’t… Don’t hate me tomorrow, okay?” He stumbled awkwardly.
Harry smiled and moved forward to kiss him softly. “I promise, Ray. I won’t hate you.”
Draco nodded and hugged the smaller boy. “Say it again?”
“I love you, Ray, and I will never ever hate you, no matter what I remember. I know who you are now and I won’t forget that when I remember who you were then. Better?” He laughed.
“Yeah.” Draco laughed with him. “It’s a little better now.”
“Good.” Harry’s eyes closed and he began to relax.
“Baby, if you do get mad or hate me, will you talk to me about it and give me another chance?” He whispered.
“Ummhmm.” Harry murmured with a slight nod, already almost asleep.
“Goodnight, Harry. I love you too.” And Draco finally closed his eyes.
…
Severus stood by the fire and was on his third drink. Remus had been called away to Dumbledore’s office as he was tucking the boys in and he was glad for the time alone. He was so deep in thought he didn’t realize the time passing or that Remus had returned. The werewolf silently watched the man as he stood somberly in front of the fire, drinking a warm and rich alcoholic drink. His senses could smell the sorrow, the fear, the longing rolling off the other man.
Remus knew pain. Knew it intimately and carried its terrible burden wherever he went. Life was a battle for him and it always had been. No one had ever understood that. His friends hadn’t and Sirius had only just begun to realize just how terrible and difficult it was to just keep moving. But this man before him knew. He knew all the types of pain just as closely as Remus did. Full understanding hit the werewolf then. He was looking at the only man in the world who could possibly ever understand just what it was like to have to battle for every smile and brief happiness granted to them.
He truly understood for the first time that Severus’ life had been hard from the very beginning and every year made it even more difficult. And Remus felt his heart constrict at the strength and beauty displayed in Severus’ survival. The Potions Master had never submitted except for the brief period in his life when he had worn the Dark Mark willingly and later threw himself at Dumbledore’s feet for mercy. This man had known pain and torment of a kind and Remus was no longer alone with the knowledge of suffering and the crueler reality of the world.
Severus, tall and darkly handsome, who had a bright and burning darkness in him that refused to bend again, was now starting to break at the thought of losing the only person he had ever loved. Worse, Harry was possible the only person who had ever loved him back. Remus wanted with all his heart to sooth that pain, to comfort the beautiful man before him. He wanted to let him know he wasn’t as filthy as he imagined and that he didn’t have to stand so ridged and alone any more. That it was okay to soften and allow himself to feel again and to be happy.
Unknown to him, Remus’ eyes began to shift to gold. It was less than a week to the full moon and the smell of the man not more than five feet from him was intoxicating. It was spicy and powerful and sharp. He knew that he could smooth those edges, could taste the sweet that the bitterness hid. He just had to take it, just had to reach out.
Severus turned, too drunk to be surprised when he came face-to-face with the Wolf. He opened his mouth to say something and was shoved firmly against the wall, a mouth on his, a tongue sliding against his, a gentle growl vibrating from the other man’s chest against his own. His warm drunkenness evaporated instantly as his heart began to race as adrenaline swamped his veins.
Remus was his height exactly, but was several inches smaller in waist and shoulders, and he was shocked to find out just how strong the other man’s slender body was. There were steel-strong muscles under that soft golden skin. Hungry gold eyes stared into his own and for a brief moment he felt fear and then he felt relief. Relief that this man who had bourn all his burdens without destroying his compassion and gently heart wasn’t afraid to be dirtied by touching him, nor was he afraid of the darkness he contained. Relief that the pain and absurd fear over Harry was retreating as fire and pleasure sparked along his senses.
Two strong hands grabbed his hips and held them still as the werewolf leaned against him, thrusting once against him, viciously, before stilling. The kiss turned gentle when he didn’t fight back or try to escape. Honey brown hair fell against Severus’ cheeks and neck and he itched to wind his fingers through it, to touch it, but he couldn’t allow himself that and his arms remained limp by his side.
The werewolf’s eyes became molten as he pulled his mouth away. Severus took a deep breath, trying to stop himself from panting. But he couldn’t stop the gasp as the warm mouth returned, this time to lick and suck at his neck. He moaned and his hands finally came up to wrap around the man’s hips, pulling him against him to give evidence of his growing desire.
“Severus.”
Remus’ voice had gone low and hoarse, a slight growl remaining. Severus looked into the golden eyes. His mind reached out, loosened by the alcohol and the desire saturating his mind. Respect, lust, and remembered pain hit him. Remus’ mind pressed into his awareness and he was awed by the torment contained within the gentle loving mind. Pain controlled and soothed and embraced instead of chained and conquered as he had done.
He smiled grimly. It wasn’t love that brought them together. It wasn’t lust or desire for each other’s body. It was the need to exist beyond harsh reality, the desire for relief, and the need to share strength so that survival is no longer so tedious. He knew he wasn’t quite as sober as he thought he was. He knew he would most likely regret going farther than they had. He knew he was backing himself into a corner where he’d either have to break or adapt. But he couldn’t push away the burning heat of the other man’s mind or his hard powerful body. He couldn’t dredge up the self-denial necessary to refuse himself the pleasure and promise awakening along his every nerve.
“Wolf.”
He drew the name out, slowly spilling it from his lips, caressing it; his head tilted to the side, his body shifted. Remus reacted to the seduction by clamping his teeth on the pale skin offered up to him while his hands tore open the man’s outer robes. They fell from Severus’ shoulders and soon his shirt was being unbuttoned.
Severus gasped and slowly rubbed his hips against the Wolf’s. Remus growled and began licking and kissing, his hands exploring the exposed chest before his mouth could do the same. Severus’ hands buried themselves in the soft graying hair tugging and pulling as he let his passion rise as Remus’ hot, wet mouth awakened him.
They were kissing again and this time Severus was battling, testing for dominance. Remus’ shirt fell away. His followed after. Pants were becoming undone as they pushed and shoved and fought to make the other submit. Both were sweating now. Teeth marks littered their skin, ringed their necks. They nipped and arched, knowing they would fall; they would lose control to the burning pleasure; but who would be first, who would open themselves to the ultimate release and submit themselves fully?
Remus’ strength gave way with a cry of passion as Severus’ fingers slid skillfully into his cavern. He had never experienced anything like it and his legs gave out. Sirius had never fought him like this, had never made his blood burn and burn. It had always been sweet between them, Sirius always surrendered and was taken, but this… This battle, this passion, and heat, he was losing his mind.
Severus followed him to the floor in front of the fireplace. Their naked bodies writhed together and Remus cried out again as his legs were spread and Severus entered him with a swift, painful thrust. But he knew pain and this pain was welcome, was joyful and perfect. He arched and begged for more. And Severus answered.
They moved together; hungry, starving, and full of need. Severus sank into the man under him, who was wrapped around him. He tasted the Wolf’s soul, his magic; he licked up his tears and swallowed his cries. Remus gave everything; he let him be taken and consumed and rejoiced at the growing hunger Severus displayed when Remus expected revulsion. He howled and wound himself tight around his lover, the end was coming and he was certain it would destroy him.
The explosion came and they both cried out hoarsely, arching and thrusting violently until the waves calmed. Panting, they collapsed next to each other. Remus’ golden eyes glowing and half-lidded, Severus keeping his closed as sweet exhaustion sung in his soul. Their scent filled the room. The sound of fire still echoing from the hearth and filling the room with its light. The heat was theirs and they rested in the peace.
Remus smiled widely as he heard his lover’s breath even out in deep sleep. He gently stroked the damp skin and petted the silky, potion-stained hair. A gentle kiss and still the man didn’t stir and he chuckled deeply before standing and gathering the man in his arms. Without a word, he carried Severus into the bedroom and tucked him in, curling up next to him with sated contentment.
Chapter Eighteen
Severus woke first. He was immediately aware of the warm body curled protectively around his and his eyes snapped open unseeing as he spiraled through the memories of the night before. He waited for the shock to pass, expecting regret or horror to follow. Neither appeared. Instead, he found the shock bleeding seamlessly into serenity. He felt calm and surprisingly strong.
Gracefully, he slid from the bed. He dressed silently and turned to stare down at the Wolf. The deep bite on his shoulder throbbed as he watched the lean man burrow into the spot he had just left, seeking warmth. He shook his head, making his hair fall and hide his face, before leaving the room. He’d think about this later. First, he had the boys to deal with.
…
Harry lay on his back, eyes closed, and his mind racing as the new memories sparked and spun through his mind. Draco lay at his side and he briefly wondered if he was still sleeping or just waiting for him to make the first move. The minutes passed and Harry thought he could face the world. He opened his eyes. Draco was watching him, waiting. There was fear and resignation in his eyes.
“Ray…” Harry managed an honest smile. “I remember. I don’t hate you.”
Draco’s eyes filled with tears and he wrapped his body around Harry’s, crying softly in soul-deep relief. Harry let him and hugged him back. In truth, it wasn’t hard to still love his best-friend. This eleven year old Draco was not the one he remembered at all, though he did have some questions about where he stood politically.
In fact, he wasn’t the same Harry he remembered being. They were both different. He honestly felt just as at fault for the stupid fighting he remembered happening between him and Draco. That didn’t need to come between them. He would like to see Ron and Hermione, though he honestly felt closer to Draco at this point.
He felt bad for not remembering them at all. He was sure he had hurt their feelings when he had cringed away from them. He also felt ashamed. He never wanted them to know just how bad things had been for him at the Dursleys. He had wanted to leave it all behind when he came to Hogwarts; start over as a new person.
Mostly he was upset about… he winced. He didn’t even know what to call him anymore. He wanted to curl up and cry with grief and horror. He thought he could handle it, could understand, but remembering his… Dad? Professor? … hating him and the strength of the hate he returned was difficult to face. He just couldn’t reconcile his savior with his slimy git of a Potion’s Master.
“Baby?” Draco asked, feeling the spiking despair, hurt, and confusion.
“I… I just need time. To be by myself. To think,” he answered. “Please?”
Draco looked down into his friend’s face and saw the terrible knowledge in his pained green eyes. He saw the knowledge that they had been enemies, no matter how stupid that seemed now. He saw the isolation Harry was sitting in even though he promised Draco had been forgiven. Helpless, Draco nodded and left the bed. He got dressed and left the room. He couldn’t bear to see that look in Harry’s eyes. Harry’s pain and grief cut into him and he glared when his father asked him how things were.
“He needs to be alone to think, but he says he forgives me. I don’t feel like breakfast and am going to the Headmaster to duel.” He said coldly. His father stopped him with a hand on his shoulder.
“I will duel you. I took today off.”
Draco nodded and went to stand by the door while his Dad told Moony they were leaving and to watch for Harry. They left, and Draco felt his rage rise. He was mad at everything. He was mad at himself for behaving the way he had when he was eleven. Mad that Severus was guilty of the same childishness. He was mad at Harry for holding the past against him when obviously they were past that, and they had grown into different people. First Year seemed like ages ago. It wasn’t fair everything he had done then was now being held against him. He had said he was sorry, and Harry said he was forgiven, so why was he being punished and pushed away? He loved Harry. Didn’t that mean anything?
Severus was trapped in similar dark thoughts, and when they dueled, it was unusually vicious. When a hex got through, they tended to the damage and went right on going without a break. Severus didn’t use anything past the level Draco was displaying, but he wasn’t holding back much either. The Malfoy Lord was agile, pissed, and powerful. He really didn’t need to be coddled.
…
Remus waited for Harry to come out and for Severus and Draco to return. Neither happened, and the hours passed. When no one came for lunch, he got tired of it and went to find Harry. The small eleven-year-old was still in bed, staring at the wall. Remus sat next to him and the green eyes slowly focused on him. The child looked away with a blush of shame.
“I know. I’m hiding.” He said anxiously, twisting the blanket in his hands. “I need to come out and face everyone.”
“They aren’t here,” Remus offered, grabbing him in a gentle hug. “It’s just me for right now.”
Harry nodded and let himself be held. Eventually he began to talk. “I just… I remember who everyone expects me to be. I remember trying so hard to be strong so that they wouldn’t find me a disappointment. I shoved everything about the Dursleys away so hard that I honestly forgot about it most of the time. I mimicked Ron, even when I felt bad about doing some of the things we did. He was Gryffindor. Of the Light. He was what I was supposed to be; I just had to be even better, right? Now I don’t know anything for sure. Slytherins aren’t evil and I feel so stupid for ever believing such a thing. I know better than to buy into prejudices like that. I really do. I knew it then too, but I… I just… couldn’t be bothered, I guess… I was too busy working to fit in, and it was just easier…”
“Oh, Harry. You were eleven. You’re eleven now, really.” Remus tipped the child’s face to him. “You can’t expect yourself to be always right or even to know what to do. You are supposed to need help and you are supposed to get that help. I’m here this time around. If you need advice, I’m here and so are Severus and Draco, though I recommend you remember he is a child too at the moment.”
Harry smiled a broken smile, tears streaming from his eyes. “Severus… Dad… Professor… I don’t even know what to call him anymore. He hated me so much, Moony!”
Remus held him as he cried. When Harry calmed, he rubbed his back and reassured him. “Severus is a hard man for a reason, Harry. He saved us, and he continues to save us at the expense of his own torment. He was a child much like you were. Abused. And he came to school with the same hopes. Only he found the same rejection and abuse here that he found at the hands of his family. He grew bitter and friendless and hateful. He has only now begun to truly understand what it means to let that anger go-- to know happiness. He’s not the man you remember. He loves you, Harry. You love him. And what you love about him is the very strength and understanding and empathy that he gained surpassing the memories that are new to you. He isn’t that man anymore. He’s not playing that part anymore.”
Harry nodded and wiped away his tears.
“Now. You’ve been in bed long enough. I know you have questions for them. Get dressed and come out and ask them. Remember the past few weeks and don’t let them go. Those memories are even more real than what happened during your First Year because this is the real Severus and Draco and not the old copies that hurt you.”
“Thank you, Moony.” Harry smiled and did as he was told.
…
Draco felt Harry’s need for him and he called a halt to the endless duel. His body was screaming in pain, several muscles were strained. His magical core thrummed with exhaustion, but he felt better and clear-headed. He realized it was pointless to be angry. Harry deserved time and all he could do was wait and be there for him. And that’s what he planned to do. He was Lord Malfoy, after all. He didn’t give up on what he wanted, and Harry was his.
They entered the dungeons to find Harry and Remus sitting on the couch. Remus gave them a reassuring smile, but Harry’s face was blank. His green eyes were grim. Draco and Severus took the seats across from the two and waited. Harry didn’t make them wait long.
“I… I’m sorry for taking so long.” Harry began softly. “I… wanted to know if you would… answer some questions.”
“Of course.” Severus inclined his head stiffly. Harry avoided looking at him at all, but Draco noticed his friend had no trouble looking at him. He felt encouraged.
“Well, I want to know how you feel about Muggleborns, Draco.” Harry thought that was the easiest thing to start with.
Draco held Harry’s eyes as he answered, “I realize that they hold potential power and are important to the magical community’s survival. I still disapprove of witches, wizards, or Muggleborns marrying or breeding with Muggles. Our traditions and customs are important and loosing them will mean the loss of the soul of magic, and the intake of Muggle beliefs and culture is eroding what the Purebloods guard. But I don’t feel exclusion or the murder of Muggleborns to be the answer, nor is hording the knowledge away from Muggleborns. We need to ingrate Muggleborns into our Society. Excluding them only forces them to cling to their Muggle ways and that is unacceptable.”
Harry nodded. “I don’t really understand what you are saying, but I get the point. Thank you. I… I don’t think I could ever hate Muggleborns or even all Muggles. I didn’t… want that to come between us.”
“It won’t.” Draco said decisively.
“So you don’t follow Voldemort or his beliefs?”
“No. I am not ever going to be a Death Eater. I admit the idea held pleasure for me before my first father died, but not anymore. I realize I didn’t understand the reality of the Dark Lord and now that I do, I am set fully against him. He is an enemy to the Wizarding World.”
“Will you forgive me?”
Draco was shocked by the question and his serious mask fell into a youthful expression of bewilderment. “What for?”
“I… I allowed myself to believe the prejudices about Slytherin House and I… I disliked you unfairly. You were... different than me, but that doesn’t mean it was okay to refuse your offer of friendship. I should have gotten to know you better before I did that.” Harry shrugged helplessly. “I was mean to you unfairly.”
“Of course I forgive you.” Draco shook his head in awe. Then he smiled and ran over to his friend as Harry’s relief rushed through him. The two boys embraced and clung to each other.
Severus watched this enviously. He caught Remus’ eyes on him and looked away. No, he would not allow himself to be open. Not when he was about to be rejected. The boys calmed and he found himself looking back and meeting his son’s green eyes. He couldn’t find the strength to look away.
“I… don’t know what to say.” Harry admitted. “I… I love you and I’m grateful for what you’ve done for me, but I’m also hurt and confused and angry and frightened. I thought you were the one trying to kill me to get to the Stone and that was horrible of me when you had done nothing more than be unfair in class. And you were protecting me even though you hated me. You thought I was so horrible and…”
“I know what I thought.” Severus snapped and winced when it made Harry flinch and gentled his voice. “I’m not angry at you, but at myself. I was blind and a fool. I’m sorry, Harry. I know you are not what I thought you were. You never were. I wish I had been informed of your home life. It would have made a difference, however small. I could have helped you.”
Harry nodded. “I realize now that it was wrong of me to hide the abuse. I still don’t want anyone to know, but I realize that someone has to know because I do need help. And you’ve helped me so much when no one else could. I’m glad that you’re my father.”
Severus jerked as if slapped. His eyes widened for a split second before he could gain control of his expression and made it form mild surprise. Draco whispered something in Harry’s ear, and the boy laughed, tears glittering in his eyes as he crossed the distance and hugged his teacher. Severus held him fiercely. Draco laughed with Remus. When everyone settled down, Harry was sitting next to his father with Draco on his other side and Moony at their feet.
…
“Are the boys in bed?” Remus asked when Severus returned to the sitting room.
“Yes.” Severus answered evenly, his face shadowed by his hair. He hesitated in the doorway, unsure whether to talk to the man about what happened the night before or if he should just go to bed. The Wolf made his decision for him. Remus poured him a glass of brandy and offered the amber liquid with a sweet smile. Severus forced himself to step across the room and accept it.
“How do you feel?” Remus asked quietly as the other man took a sip.
Severus sighed and looked into the fire, placing his… lover? … to his left. “Things could have been much worse, but it is not as it was before between us either. I am very pleased that Draco has been accepted more completely. I don’t think he could bear to be rejected.”
“It will take time for understanding to come.” Remus agreed. “He is just a child, but his love is true. His need for you has not lessened.”
Severus said nothing to that. He had mixed feelings about that. He was pleased and relieved that Harry still wanted him to be his guardian. On the other hand, he knew that the child was hurting because of him and he couldn’t promise he’d never hurt Harry again. The boy deserved better than that, especially considering everything he had been through.
“Come.” Remus offered and took a few steps toward the bedroom.
Severus watched him move. The way the firelight caressed his tan skin; the way his slender waist swayed with each step; the way his muscles coiled with hidden power. He felt desire stir lazily as he took in the golden brown hair; yellow in this lighting, the grey invisible. The man’s mouth promised reassurance and strength; the eyes slowly bleeding to gold as the werewolf sensed his lust promised him he’d be loved. He turned his back, his hands clenched tight on his glass.
“Severus?” Remus spoke huskily.
The Potion’s Master closed his eyes. “Last night was… unexpected. It can’t… happen again.”
“Why are you doing this?” Remus asked, his hands falling on Severus’ hips and pulling him back against him. The dark-eyed man didn’t pull away, but he didn’t relax either. “Why are you denying yourself? It’s pointless, you know.” He leaned close so that his whispered words were right by the other man’s ear. “It’s impossible to stop wanting you now that I know what you offer. You’re beautiful, my Severus. I want you. I need you. I’m tired of being alone.”
“I offer you nothing.” He snapped, his voice cold and his eyes still closed. “What about your mutt? Have you forgotten him, Wolf? Can I trust someone who gives in so easily to betrayal?”
Remus jerked back as if he had been hit. He backed away on stiff legs, a growl growing in his chest. His arms wrapped tight around himself as he fought the rage that demanded he lash out in revenge. Due to the moon, to his lust, the wolf was close to the surface and it was taking all his strength not to pounce on the stubborn man before him and make him bleed, force him to submit. Instead, he made himself think as a human, made himself speak.
“Sirius… Sirius and I were friends-- Pack members. We were hurt badly and sought healing and comfort in each other’s embrace. He didn’t love me like… like I was his mate. I didn’t love him like that, though I thought I did.”
“No.” Severus spun and glared threateningly. His fingers were curled into claws. “Don’t say it.”
Remus smiled, and it wasn’t sweet or gentle. The wolf was in his smile. His eyes were gold. “Yes. My Severus. I know better now what it is to love. I know my mate.” He took a fluid step forward. Severus stood his ground, but now had his wand out and pointed. “Don’t fight me. Please, Severus. You know you want this. I can feel it pulling you in as much as me. You are my mate.”
Severus shot off a binding curse, but Remus easily dodged. He slammed into his mate and shoved him violently into the wall. He pinned the black-eyed man’s wand arm above his head, the weapon pointing uselessly toward the ceiling. He was growling, a deeply pleased rumble. He was enjoying the display of strength his mate was giving him, the fight he was putting up. It will be delicious when his mate surrendered that strength to him. He shivered in anticipation and licked along his mate’s throat, sucking and nibbling the sweet flesh there.
“My Pack was torn from me. I will not loose it a second time. You are mine as I am yours, my Severus. There is no escaping me. There is no escaping your own needs. You crave this as much as I do. We started the Mate Bond last night.”
Severus knew Remus was right. He felt his body react instantly to being pinned by the other. He was already arching against him, but he couldn’t… he couldn’t give in. He couldn’t allow himself this distraction. They were at war. He was wanted by the Dark Lord. He was Marked by a Master and couldn’t bear to be claimed again, even through a bond of mutual commitment. He couldn’t allow himself anymore weaknesses. He had a son to protect. A godson. Himself. He couldn’t add a Mate to that list. He wasn’t that strong. He was tired of being strong.
“Yes.” Remus smiled as he felt the man in his arms relax. “Exactly. You don’t have to fight anymore. You don’t have to be strong. I am here, and I will always help you. You aren’t standing alone anymore, my Mate.”
Severus moaned as hot lips claimed him. He knew it was a lie. He was always alone. He had to fight, or he’d be pulled under where there was only pain in the darkness. But it felt so good. He wavered a moment more and then let go. He was just so tired of it all; so tired. He waited fearfully, but was caught by warmth and pleasure, and he cried out as Remus laid him in his bed and followed him down.
…
Harry woke from a nightmare, but Draco was right with him, holding him and whispering that it was all right. The blonde let him calm before asking what he had seen in his sleep. But even then Harry felt sure he couldn’t explain; he couldn’t put the horror and shame in words. Draco stared at his silent friend, his worry growing as the fear and shame didn’t lessen.
“Baby?” He crooned. “Tell me. It’ll be okay, I promise. Was it the Dursleys?”
“Maybe.” Harry finally whispered, his haunted eyes coming up to Draco’s. “Ray… It was… Maybe it was because of them…”
“What was it?” Draco asked gently as he wrapped Harry in a supportive embrace, tucking the smaller boy’s head under his chin. Harry lay stiffly in his arms for a minute before melting against him. Draco smiled as he felt love and gratitude and relief begin to creep through the fear. He smirked into his friend’s raven-colored hair and waited.
Harry closed his eyes and allowed himself to believe he was safe. That nothing bad could reach him. It was surprisingly easy. When he was ready, he began to talk, his eyes still shut. “I was in here waiting for Dad to come and tuck me in. You… weren’t there, but in the dream that didn’t seem as odd as it does now… I mean, where else would you be?” Draco’s smirk turned into a grin, but he didn’t interrupt. “Well, I smiled when Dad came in. I was happy and content, but then I noticed that he wasn’t smiling back. He was just staring at me. The blank stare became angry and then hateful. I… I… I tried to ask what… why… but he didn’t… He just stalked across the room and began… yelling… telling me I was… w-w-worthless and d-d-dangerous and s-s-stupid…”
Draco closed his eyes as Harry began to cry. He felt his friends despair as if it were his own. It made tears burn his eyes because Draco knew behind the hurt was belief. Harry, deep down, still believed he was worthless and a freak and unwanted. The monstrous Dursleys still had their claws in him. Draco knew then with diamond hard clarity that he would punish the Dursleys. That he would get revenge for the soul-deep wounds Harry still carried.
“Ray…” Harry choked out, his tears still thick in his voice. “God, Ray… he… he hit me… I begged him to stop… but he…”
“Harry!” Draco clutched his baby to his chest and rocked him. “No! No, Baby, that would never happen! Severus, Dad, he loves you, loves us. He would never hurt you like that. We may make him angry. We are his children and that’s what children do, but he’d never, NEVER, hit you.”
“I know.” Harry wailed, shame rising up in him. “I’m sorry!”
Draco understood then. Harry was ashamed for thinking that of Severus; to put their father on such a level as Vernon Dursley. Harry was aware that he was insulting their father deeply. “Baby, it’s not your fault. It is only natural that you have subconscious fears about being struck by Severus. He’s your dad now and the only person you ever had like that was that vile man. It is only natural that you link the two together.”
Harry nodded but still felt miserable.
“Come on.” Draco slid from the bed, half dragging Harry with him. “I’ll prove it.”
“What? Wait! No!” Harry panicked and thrashed against his friend.
“Stop, Baby.” Draco said gently and lovingly. Harry stilled in response, staring into his friend’s eyes with trusting desperation. “Please. Let’s go to Dad. I swear to you, he won’t mind. It’ll be nice. I remember doing this with my mother. It’ll make you feel better. Trust me, Baby.”
Harry was trembling, but he did trust Draco. He trusted him more than anyone else in the world. So he slid from the bed and allowed the blonde to grab his hand and tow him out of their room. To get his mind off of the growing terror and irrational certainty that Severus would be raging mad that they had woken him, he stared at Draco’s free blonde hair. It was not in a braid and shimmered like a waterfall, coating the boy’s shoulders and back. Tenderly, Harry reached and slid his fingers into its silky warmth. Draco turned his head slightly and smiled out of the corner of his eye. Harry smiled back, still playing with the long blonde hair. It calmed him.
“Dad?” Draco asked, pushing the bedroom door open. The room was pitch-black. Harry was trembling again.
“Draco?” Severus’ voice was deep and unusually rough with sleep. “What’s the matter?”
“Harry had a really bad dream. Can we sleep with you?” Draco was moving even as he asked, pulling the small brunette with him. A chocked sob of fear came from Harry, but Draco only pulled him faster. They reached the bed just as Draco finished talking and without waiting for an answer, the Malfoy Lord climbed up. He met flesh sooner than he thought he would from where he heard Severus’ voice come from and froze.
“Draco? Harry?” Remus’ voice came from the darkness and Draco began to smirk.
“Come on, Harry. It’s alright. It’s just Moony and Dad.” The blonde turned to pull his friend up beside him.
“Harry?” Severus asked, wide awake now at the sound of his son’s quiet crying. “What’s the matter?”
“He’s just scared.” Draco offered when Harry remained silent.
“Come here.” Severus ordered and there was maneuvering on the bed.
Soon both of the eleven-year-olds were trapped between the two men and under the covers with them. Severus had already spelled pajamas on himself and the Wolf without the boys noticing and he could practically feel both Remus and Draco smirking in amusement. He found himself irritated that the insufferable blonde knew of his relationship with the Wolf, but that was shoved aside when he felt Harry’s small body trembling against him.
“Harry? Do you want to tell me about it?” He asked gently. “It will be harder to tell me tomorrow.”
“Y-y-you t-t-tell h-h-him, R-r-ray.” Harry begged.
Draco cuddled against Remus, still holding Harry’s hand. Remus gently stroked his arm and it gave him courage against Harry’s terror, which was filling his chest with ice shards. He spoke softly, carefully. “He dreamed Dad got mad at him and was calling him names like that bastard Dursley did. Then… then Dad…”
“Did I strike you?” Severus asked, taking mercy on Draco and wanting Harry to tell him himself.
“Y-y-yes! I’m s-s-sorry!” Harry wailed. “I know you w-w-wouldn’t! I w-w-won’t do it again!”
“Do you?” Severus asked calmly. His arms snaked around the little boy and a hand ran through the boy’s hair. “Do you really know I’d never do that? It’s okay to need to be reassured, Harry.”
“I-I-I…”
“I would never hit you, Harry. I Will Never Hit You. I most likely will get angry at some time or other and you will become angry with me, but we will work through it with words. I would never hit you in anger or magic. Is that clear?”
“Y-y-yes, sir.” Harry mumbled tearfully, his fear subsiding.
“Good.” Severus sighed. “I may say things, Harry. I… I have a very bad temper, but I have self-control too. I will not call you names, but I most likely will yell and question your intelligence. I will not lie to you.”
Remus snorted. “Sorry.” He said quickly and there was the sound of cloth rustling as the Wolf buried his head, trying to muffle his snickering. Unfortunately, Draco gave him away by laughing outright and not bothering to hide it. Severus scowled into the dark and promised himself he’d punish the Wolf later for this and for the pain in his backside. But thoughts of revenge were put on hold when Harry chuckled weakly.
“And what, may I ask, is so funny?” He demanded, playing along.
“You.” Draco snorted. “Like we needed you to warn us that you’d yell and call us idiotic morons. That’s a given, Father.”
“For you, it definitely is.” He sneered.
“Daaadddd…” Draco whined in mock hurt.
Harry laughed. “Don’t worry. We’re all morons compared to Dad.”
“At least that’s what we let him think.” Remus said in a stage whisper. “It’s good for his ego.”
“That’s it!” Severus growled and attacked Harry with nimble fingers.
Harry roared with laughter, protesting that he hadn’t said it. Draco moved to rescue Harry by attacking his father, but Remus stopped him with an attack of his own. The boys squealed with laughter and it was many minutes before they were all settled down and quiet. Severus lay awake, listening to the breathing of his children and lover in bed with him and wondered, almost dazedly, how this came to pass. How had things become so good? He closed his eyes to sleep and was almost able to forget the threat of pain should this all be taken from him.
…
Remus woke first and stared in wonder. Harry was laying half across his father’s chest, both sleeping peacefully. Severus was lying on his back, one arm holding Harry securely in place. Draco was hugging the other arm to him and was resting his blonde head on Severus’ bicep. Remus was on his side, facing Draco’s back, and cuddling the boy to his chest. Draco’s hair was under his head and was silky soft and warm from body heat. His arm was flung across both boys and lying peacefully around Severus’ waist.
He wished with a fierce, painful passion that the moment would never end. That he could stay like this forever. In answer to the wish, Severus’ eyes flickered open. The dark ebony pools quickly sharpened with awareness and flickered at the children between them and back to his face. Remus saw the same wonder and painful joy he had experienced.
“Ours.” Remus whispered, eyes going gold.
Severus’ eyes flared in answer; lust, howling joy, protective strength. “Mine,” he agreed.
“Does that mean you’re going to have a Bonding Ceremony?” Draco asked sleepily, his eyes never opening. The two men blinked, and Remus blushed with embarrassment and Severus hid his face behind his hair.
“What do you mean?” Remus tried to brazen it out.
“Gryffindor.” Severus sneered at him. Remus glared back as if to say ‘I don’t see you doing any better’.
“It’s alright.” Draco offered, finally opening his silver eyes. “Harry and I love you both and it would be great if you two Bonded.”
“Don’t you mean married?” Harry asked, green eyes still fogged with sleep as he looked around at them all. “Where’s my glasses?”
“Back in our room probably.” Draco yawned and cuddled up to Harry, burying his nose in the brunette’s hair. “And no they can’t marry. Marriage is for a man and a woman. Bonding is between two people of the same sex.”
“Why’s it different?” Harry frowned bewildered.
“Well, because same-sex pairs can’t have children.” Draco answered. “Except by adoption. Marriage is a legal binding that has political power and consequences. Bonding is private and about the two people only. Family and close friends may know about the ceremony and the life-pledge, but it’s not something that will be acknowledged in the political field.”
“That doesn’t make sense.” Harry rubbed at his eyes with a frown. “What if your dad had Bonded with a man and then adopted. Wouldn’t the child then be the Heir?”
“No.” Draco shook his head. “Lucius would be Head of the Family, but when he died, the title of Lord would be handed to one of his siblings’ children. Family titles are passed down to blood only. Always.”
“Oh.” Harry bit his lip. “Wouldn’t that make the adopted child feel bad?”
“Not really.” Draco shrugged. “They’d be raised with that knowledge and probably trained to support the blood Heir, maybe even marry them.”
“Enough politics. It’s too early.” Remus groaned and threw a pillow at the young Lord.
Severus and Harry laughed, happily joining in on the pillow fight.
…
After everyone dressed and ate, Severus left to teach his classes. Draco, Harry, and Remus studied diligently, had a light lunch, and made their way to the Room of Requirement to play until dinner. Ron and Hermione were there, as well as Vince and Pansy. Harry ran up to his friends and hugged them both. Draco scowled at that, but made no move to interfere. He cared too much about Harry to purposely ruin his happiness.
“I’m sorry I didn’t remember.” The little boy said sincerely. “Wow! You guys are so much bigger!”
They all laughed. “I’m glad you remember, mate.” Ron ruffled his hair. “And it’s you who got smaller!”
“Oh, Harry.” Hermione knelt and hugged him tight. “We’ve been so worried about you.”
“Are you two a couple now?” Harry asked innocently, his mind still happily buzzing after finding out Moony and his Dad were together. “Vince? Pansy? Are you a couple too?”
“What? No!” Pansy gasped in horror. “We’re just friends.”
“Oh.” Harry pouted. Draco felt the mild pout turn into a deeper fear. “Do you like Draco then?”
“Of course I do.” Pansy smiled and cooed at the young Draco. “He’s just so cute!”
“Stop it, Pans.” Draco slapped her hands away from his cheeks. He huffed and brushed his thick braid off his shoulder before crossing his arms over his chest, all the while hiding the fact that he felt a warm giddiness in his chest. Was Harry jealous? He wanted to grin but fought it back easily with Harry’s fear. “Tell him the truth.”
“We’re just friends too.” Pansy admitted. “We gave it a go, but decided that’s all we could ever be.”
Draco did grin as undeniable jealously flashed through him from Harry. The blonde smiled at his younger friend knowingly and Harry looked away with a blush. “Well, what about you two then?” Harry demanded, hoping to successfully change the subject. He wasn’t quite sure what he was feeling and the way Draco was looking at him was really disturbing. His stomach flipped and his cheeks burned.
“Well… we…” Ron looked at Hermione helplessly. She looked back just as lost.
“What?” Harry frowned.
“We were dating, but…” Hermione sighed. “But we’ve been fighting a lot since school started.”
“Because of me?” Harry asked in a small voice. Draco hurried to his side and wrapped his arms around his waist. Harry leaned against him.
“No!” Hermione denied.
“Really, Harry. It has nothing to do with you. We just didn’t know each other as well as we thought when we had assumed we knew everything, I guess.” Ron added.
“Oh.” Harry shook his head, confused.
“Let’s fly.” Draco decided.
And so they did. Harry still needed a nap, but he woke when Remus went to carry him back to the rooms and walked with Draco instead. They ate dinner and practiced Occlumency as they always did and went up to practice dueling with Dumbledore. They were being tucked into bed when Severus brought up the coming holiday. Both boys hadn’t even realized the date until then.
“Ms. Weasly and Mr. Longbottom stayed after class and wondered what we planned to do for Halloween this Thursday.”
“Halloween?” Harry asked sleepily.
“Are we going to have a party?” Draco demanded excitedly.
“I was considering it.” Severus admitted. “You could meet your close friends in the Room of Requirement for a couple hours. The Feast is obviously off limits.”
“Thanks, Dad!” The boys cried in unison, reaching up and hugging him tight.
“You are welcome.” Severus smiled and ran a hand through both of their hair. “Don’t make me regret it. Work hard on your studies. You must make some substantial progress. And you will follow the rules.”
“Yes, Father.” Draco smiled and Harry nodded earnestly.
“Good night, boys. Get some rest.”
“Night!” They chorused again and giggled.
…
“What are you doing, Ray?” Harry asked. They had just finished breakfast and usually went to the playroom to do their studies, but Draco had towed him to the sitting room instead.
“I’m contacting my mother.” He answered. “We’re going to need costumes for tomorrow night.”
“Oh.” Harry bit his lip, remembering vividly almost attacking her.
“Don’t worry. She’s sorry.” Draco assured him. “She won’t try and take me away ever again. If she does, I’ll never see her again.”
“But… she’s your mother.” Harry protested. He couldn’t imagine having a mother and then ignoring her.
“She is,” Draco agreed. “But some things are more important than that. Besides. She’ll always be my mother. It’s the trust between us that is at risk.”
Draco released him and went to the fireplace. Harry stood awkwardly a few feet away. Remus stood in the doorway. He didn’t want to get in the way, but he wanted to be in reach should the boys need him. Severus would never forgive him if he lost the boys. He’d be mad enough that he was letting Draco do this without asking him first.
“Narcissa Malfoy. Mother.” Draco called into the green fire. He didn’t know where his mother was, but she had made certain he could always get in contact with her through those words. An elf appeared and told him to wait a minute. It wasn’t long before Narcissa’s face appeared.
“Yes, Dragon. How may I help you?”
“Mother.” Draco inclined his head. “We are having a Halloween party tomorrow night. You are invited.”
“I would love to come. Thank you.” She smiled and both blondes fought tears. “Can I bring you anything?”
“Yes actually.” Draco smiled. “We need costumes. One for Harry, me, Vince, Greg, Pansy, the two youngest Weasleys, Miss Granger, and Longbottom.”
“I will take care of it.” She promised.
“Thank you.”
“You’re welcome, Dragon. What time should I arrive?”
“The party starts at seven, so… four thirty?”
“I’ll be there.”
“See you soon.” Draco said and ended the connection. He turned to look at the others with a frown. “I should have told her to bring costumes for you and Dad too.”
“We’ll take care of ourselves.” Remus laughed. “Now, let’s get working before you get me in trouble.”
…
Narcissa arrived on time and bearing all she promised. Draco sent his guests their costumes via house elf and then let his mother help Harry and him get ready. Narcissa enjoyed every minute. She had missed her son dreadfully. At first, she was tense around Harry, but they both slowly relaxed again.
By the time five thirty rolled around, both boys were ready. Harry was dressed in a pirate costume. He had a black eye patch, thick eyeliner, beads in his hair, bandana, off-white puffy shirt with a wide open V-neck, leather pants and boots, a fake sword, and dozens of bracelets. A magic spell gave him a temporary accent. He was adorable. Draco was an arch-angel. Wings of white-golden light, a toga, golden sparkling skin, gold bracelets, his hair free and gently blowing as if in a wind, gold eye-liner and lipstick, wrist cuffs, sandals, and a spear. He was gorgeous and very impressive.
Harry literally gaped at him. “Yer th’ most beautiful thing I’ve ever laid me eyes upon.”
Draco laughed. “You’re not half bad yourself! You’re adorable!”
Harry stuck his tongue out at him and Draco laughed again. He reached and Harry obediently went into his arms. “Aren’t you goin’ to wreck your make-up, mate?”
“It’s magic, Baby.” Draco chuckled and kissed his cheek. “See. Still perfect.”
“Shut your hole.” Harry muttered and laughed, amused despite himself by his new speech patterns.
“Come on. Let’s go!” Draco released his friend and practically ran to the door.
“Wait for us, Dragon.” Narcissa said. The boys turned and froze in place.
Draco had never seen his mother dress up for Halloween. His first father had never allowed it. Draco himself had to stop by the time he was nine. Now he could understand why. She looked… unearthly beautiful. She had butterfly wings on her back. They glowed with a faint blue light that unfortunately reminded Draco of Lucius’ eyes. Her gown was snow white and a crown of blue bells rested on her lightly golden hair. Her sliver eyes sparkled with merriment at their reaction.
“I’m a spring fairy.” She informed them.
“Beautiful as ever, Narcissa.” Severus remarked and stepped into the room. The boys weren’t sure if they were to laugh or not. On one hand, Severus looked very strange. On the other, he looked extremely dangerous.
“A ninja, Severus?” Narcissa smiled.
“I like it.” Remus chuckled as he stepped into the room. The black ninja suit didn’t leave much to the imagination and highlighted Severus deadly graceful way of moving.
“And what are you?” Narcissa laughed as the boys snickered.
“A vampire, of course.” He answered and showed off his temporary fangs. He wore a tailored blood-red suit and wore his tall collar up. His hair was slicked back and his lips were painted red. His eyes were lined with it as well. He walked with a black cane with a ruby on top. His amber eyes sparkled with humor.
“Are we ready?” Severus drawled.
“Yes!” The boys cried and raced to the door. The adults followed at a slower pace.
They were the first to arrive at the Room of Requirement and took their time thinking of what they wanted. It was perfect. The room came out dark and candle lit with bats, black cats, pumpkins, and spider webs. Music was playing near the dance floor and there were tables of sweets and delicious food with gold goblets filled with several different drinks.
Ron and Hermione were the first to arrive. Ron was dressed as a white night with silver armor. A red lion was the symbol on his chest and a heavy two handed sliver sword rested at his hip. Hermione was his princess in pink and white. She had flowers in her hair and looked very beautiful.
Greg, Vince, and Pansy came next. Pansy was an empress in a rich green dress that went on and on in several thick layers. Her hair was done up and was crowned with emeralds. She held herself with the perfect arrogance to match. Vince came as a rock-star with a black star painted around one eye and red lips. His leather outfit was very risqué and he held a red electric guitar. Greg came as a druid. He even had the beard to match, but his was a light brown to compliment his dirty blonde hair. He carried a staff and looked like he knew how to use it.
Neville and Ginny came together as medieval peasants. Ginny’s blouse was cut low and they both carried trays with foaming mugs. They looked great together and Harry asked them if they were dating. Both blushed and nodded happily.
Games started and many of them danced. Harry went a few songs with Draco but wandered over to Neville, Greg, and Ron who were playing a dart game where they aimed at the magical bats. If they were hit, they turned into chocolate that rivaled the flavor of chocolate frogs. Severus stayed back and watched, but Remus danced a few with Narcissa and bobbed for apples against Hermione. He won, but she claimed it wasn’t fair since he had fangs to help him.
It was almost ten and the room had been full of laughter and games for about four hours. No one looked to be stopping. That is until a high pitch scream cut through the air. All heads turned to see Draco collapse on the dance floor. Eyes snapped over to where Harry had been standing to see him already a boneless heap on the floor. All movement and sound stopped in horror as the boy began to twitch and whimper.
“Occlude!” Severus roared, rushing over to his son. “Come on, Harry. I know you can. Occlude your mind. NOW!”
Harry went ridged and the whimpering turned into gasping sobs. The Gryffindors were clinging to each other, eyes wide as they helplessly watched their friend suffer. The Slytherins were watching Draco. Narcissa was kneeling at his side, cradling his limp and silent form. Remus knelt by Harry but didn’t try and touch him. Neither did Severus who sat on the boy’s other side.
“Yes. Good. Very good, Harry. I know you can do it. Keep your shields up.”
“What are you talking about?” Ron demanded bravely. “It’s still getting through!”
And it was true. Harry was thrashing weakly; arching his rigid back as his whimpers and whines escaped his throat.
“This is nothing, Weasley,” Severus said tiredly, “compared to his other attacks. He is Occluding, but nothing can completely block the connection he has to You-Know-Who.”
And that was true as well. Compared to the violent convulsions and silent screams, this was much preferable.
“Can’t we do anything?” Hermione asked tearfully.
“You can go back to your dorms and pray for him.” Severus snapped, turning his attention back to his son.
Remus took the hint and stood. Gently and with warm reassurances that he didn’t believe himself, he herded them out of the room. He promised they’d see Harry again soon. Narcissa dealt with the Slytherins; merely speaking softly to them for a few minutes before they got up and left on their own.
“Should we take them home?” Remus asked Severus quietly.
“I’m not sure if moving them would be wise.” The dark-eyed man admitted. “I… wasn’t thinking… I knew the Dark Lord favored this day to act… We should have been prepared… I made a mistake...”
“No, Severus.” Remus cut him off, but wisely didn’t try and touch the tense man kneeling on the floor. “We had every reason to think this Halloween would be a quiet one. Voldemort is on the move with his army. No one could have expected him to move before the all-out attack.”
Severus shook his head once, sharply. “No. I should have known.”
“Even if you had known, what could you have done differently?” Remus pressed, relentless. “The boys had a wonderful night, one of the best they had ever had. Would you have denied them that? To do what? Occlude all day long? That would only have tired them.”
All the tension went out of Severus’ shoulders and Remus wrapped him in a bracing hug. Narcissa watched this and realization began to dawn behind her eyes. Dulled happiness quirked her mouth up. It was about time, she thought, that Severus found someone to lean on. But then her attention slipped back to her only child and she wondered with sick dread what her son was seeing behind his eyes.
…
When the vision didn’t release the boys in an hour, they carefully carried them back to Severus’ rooms and placed them in bed. Remus and Narcissa sat with them while Severus went up to the headmaster. He was sure the old man would have a clue as to what was going on. He was right. The old man was not there, so he flooed to Headquarters. Everything was chaos.
Maps were strewn everywhere and Aurors and Phoenix members were yelling over them. There were some wounded and the sounds of grief drifted to him from upstairs. He hovered around the groups, listening in. It seemed that the Death Eaters were capturing powerful members of families who were acting against them.
Innocent members of the Moody, Tonks, McGonagall, and Weasley families among others had all been killed because of the actions of others in the family. They were tortured, killed, and then strung up on Stonehenge. No Light wizard or witch could get within five hundred yards of the defiled monument and that space was growing with every added body to retrieve the dead. No spells could get through the chaotic storm fed by the continuing deaths.
The attacks were spontaneous. There was no way to tell which members of the offending families would be taken, and it was impossible to guard against. Everyone was in a panic. Severus sneered but stepped into the fray and began to help. Dumbledore looked up at him with deeply grateful eyes, knowing they had often relied on him for strategy. Shaking his head, Severus got down to business.
…
The last killing was at dawn, and that was when the boys were released. Both were inconsolable and after futilely trying to get them to calm down and speak coherently, Severus poured Dreamless Sleep down their throats and tucked them into bed, curled tightly around each other, tears still drying on their pale cheeks.
In the end, fifty-six people had been murdered, the youngest being a little girl of four. The eldest had been a woman who was ninety-seven. Fourteen of the victims had been under the age of sixteen, five had been pregnant women, and seven were male Heirs of minor pureblooded families: Edward McGonagall (Professor McGonagall’s nephew) and Bill Weasley were among them. And both of Neville Longbottom’s parents had been abducted from St. Mungo’s and killed.
Classes were cancelled for a week of mourning. Remus left. The next night was the full moon, and he had to prepare. He promised to be back Monday morning. Severus had only stared blankly. Remus had kissed his lips fleetingly and walked out the door. Narcissa sat with him and the boys. They didn’t move or speak. This was only the beginning. Things would only get worse from here.
Chapter Nineteen
Harry woke groggily, his mind hurting with all the new memories. The two days after the vision on Halloween had been spent resting. No one had talked to Draco or him about what they saw yet. Their Dad had tried, but Harry hadn’t been ready. It was all just a confused mass in his head, but now that he had aged a year the vision was clearer and so was all that had happened Second Year. Draco turned on his side, hearing his baby’s painful groan.
“You alright?” He asked, his voice thick. His hand came up and ran along Harry’s cheek and over his forehead, soothing the wrinkles.
Harry smiled and burrowed into his side. “Yeah.” He shivered. “It was so horrible…” Draco frowned at how numb and sick Harry felt and held the smaller boy tighter. “All those deaths… the screams… Why? Why does Voldemort want to destroy everything? Why are people helping him?”
“I don’t know, Baby.” Draco bit his lip. He knew he almost became one of those who were helping cause the death and destruction. He couldn’t understand how he could have been so stupid. He was very glad that he had come to see the truth before it was too late.
“I…” Harry wiggled until he was looking Draco in the eyes. His heart was beating fast again and Draco swallowed hard against the wave of mortal terror emanating from his best friend. “In the Chamber… I was so scared, Draco… I thought… I really thought I was going to die… and then Ginny would too and… and it would have been my fault for not being strong enough…”
“Harry…” Draco leaned forward, closing the gap between them, and gently kissed the other boy’s trembling lips. Harry’s eyes fluttered closed and his fear began to recede. Draco’s heart began to race in reaction. He felt his chest clench with happiness that Harry trusted him so much. “I love you, Baby. It’ll be alright.”
“Love you too.” Harry blushed and buried his face into the blonde’s chest. His free hand came up around Draco’s waist and began to toy with the silky blonde strands there. “But… I beat him. I was lucky, but I did beat him. I destroyed the diary and saved Ginny. And I’m so small and not very smart or strong. We… we might have a chance then, right? Dad and Dumbledore and the Order all have a chance of winning…”
“Of course they do.” Draco assured. “We’re definitely not going to lose to a monster like Voldemort. We’ll have tons of help too. The Wizarding World won’t just roll over and let that bastard gain power. A lot of people will be afraid, but that won’t stop them from fighting to save themselves and their families.”
Harry nodded and reluctantly sat up. “Time for breakfast? I’m hungry.”
Draco laughed and got out of bed. He picked clothes out for both of them and they quickly got dressed. Harry smiled when Draco gestured at his hair and obediently ran his hands through it to get the tangles out and let his magic wind it into a tight braid. It was now long enough to brush the top of Draco’s bottom. Harry grinned happily, his eyes sparkling as he toyed with it. Draco basked in the warmth of Harry’s delight and affection for a few minutes before taking his friend by the hand and leading him to the kitchen.
“Good morning.” Draco greeted his mother and father.
“Good morning. How do you feel?” Narcissa asked worriedly, her eyes tight with the stress of the past several days.
“Fine.” Draco gave a small smile.
“Morning, boys. I’m glad you are doing better.” Severus greeted.
“Morning.” Harry smiled shyly. “Is Moony back? He said he’d be back by Monday.”
“He is sleeping. I suspect he’ll be awake later this afternoon.” Severus answered.
They talked of inconsequential things while they ate, but when they finished Harry brought up the subject they all dreaded.
“What… what’s been done about the… the killings?” He asked timidly.
“Come. Let’s go sit in the sitting room.” Severus said gently. The boys and Narcissa didn’t argue and followed. They all made themselves comfortable. “Will you tell me what you saw?”
Harry and Draco nodded. The boys were sitting by each other while Narcissa sat at Draco’s side and Severus sat across from them. They were holding hands and Harry was leaning against the blonde. Draco’s arm was wrapped protectively around his shoulders. Harry spoke first.
“I… This vision was clearer than the ones before. Mostly… mostly it just hurt, and the emotions that… that weren’t mine were overwhelming me.” He sighed and leaned his head against his friend. “I think it’s what Voldemort is feeling. He was deliriously happy and certain of victory. The blood is beautiful to him and he craves it. He feels such… pleasure at the deaths and screams. He cast several torture spells, but I only felt… echoes of them this time. I was working hard on Occluding, and it did help.” He smiled weakly at their father, and Severus smiled back with pride in his eyes. Harry blushed and looked down. “I could tell this was just… a warm-up. He plans on making the whole world into a field of pain and blood. He is excited and cold and patient and hungry.”
“Did you see him torturing?” Severus asked gently.
“Sometimes. Sometimes the emotions were just so much that I couldn’t see. But… but sometimes I could and it was like I was the one casting those horrible spells…” Harry burst into tears, hiding his face in his hands. Draco held him and whispered in his ears.
Severus came over and hugged him. “You know it wasn’t you, Harry. You’d never do that. I’m so sorry you had to experience that.”
Eventually Harry calmed and Draco began to speak. “It’s not like that for me. It’s like I’m floating outside of everyone and I can’t do anything but watch. I saw everything. Voldemort wasn’t even there at times. Sometimes I was floating by Death Eaters instead.”
“Could you recognize them?”
“No.” Draco shook his head. “They all wore masks. I couldn’t hear their thoughts like Harry can for Voldemort. But… I will never be able to forget their voices. If... I heard them again, I would know them.”
“That will help, Draco. Thank you.” Severus gripped his hand tight. The boy was very pale and looked about to be sick. “I know this is hard, but do you remember hearing anyone talk about future plans?”
“Not really.” He shook his head. “They mostly just bragged and laughed and competed against each other.”
“Alright.” Severus nodded. “Do you wish to ask about anything you saw? You can talk to us about anything.”
“Why did they do that? Why did they like it?” Harry asked tearfully.
“There’s not easy answer for that.” Severus sighed and lifted his son into his lap to cradle him to his chest. “My theory is they are insane; sick.”
“I’m really scared of them.” Harry trembled.
“I am too.” Severus kissed his hair.
“Why does Voldemort want to kill me so bad?” He asked with a choked sob. “I… I don’t want to fight him.”
“Oh, Harry. You’re not alone any longer. We’re here with you and we will protect you.” Severus promised fiercely.
Draco nodded and held tight to Harry’s hand. “You have to promise not to go off on your own anymore.”
Harry smiled tearfully and nodded. “I don’t know what I was thinking.”
“I don’t think you were thinking at all.” Severus shook his head with a sigh of despair. The boys laughed weakly.
“Do you think you are well enough to go up to the infirmary?” Narcissa asked, rubbing her son’s back lovingly.
The blonde looked to her and smiled. “I think we can handle that.”
…
The boys were sitting on a hospital bed, sucking on their candy and talking with Narcissa. Severus watched them through expressionless eyes. He may have been softened, but he’d only show evidence of that within his own rooms. In public, he had to maintain the ruthless and vicious façade. They could not afford anything less. Poppy cleared her throat to get his attention. He met her eyes, knowing what she had to say was not good news. He hardened his spine and waited.
“I didn’t think it meant anything last week, but Harry is smaller than he should be. Last week he was half an inch shorter than he was during his First Year. I thought maybe he had a growth spurt in the summer and we would see him make up the difference, but he hasn’t. Now he’s a full inch shorter than he was in Second Year. He was four foot seven inches when he was twelve, and he’s only four foot five and a half inches now. Draco is at his correct height of five foot one. Therefore, I believe the damage he’s sustained during the visions is not being completely repaired by the spell.”
“I thought he was smaller than I remembered.” Severus answered easily.
“That means the other damage is also lingering.” Poppy continued. “He’ll continue to get fatigued quickly, and his hands will begin to shake whenever he is overtired. There is also evidence that his immune system has been damaged. He will be prone to catching influenza and colds much more quickly than other children. His weight is also dangerously low, and his organs are strained. I recommend a nutrient potion. They are hard on the stomach, but we have no other choice. He also needs to eat four to five times a day.”
“I understand.” Severus bowed his head. “Thank you for all your assistance.”
“I will want to see him three times a week. Mondays, Wednesdays, and Fridays should do.”
“Of course.” Severus agreed. “How much does he weigh? I need to know so I get the right dosage for the nutrient potion.”
“Only seventy-eight pounds.” She said sadly.
Severus nodded and returned to his family. The boys were ignorant of the seriousness of Harry’s condition and talked happily as they flooed back to their rooms. Narcissa took them to the playroom to do their morning lessons, and Severus went to his private lab to brew up Harry’s potion.
…
Once Narcissa got Harry settled and doing an assignment, she went over to her son and summoned a folder. She opened it and set it before him. He raised an eyebrow at her, and she smiled innocently back at him. That only made him frown and she had to fight not to laugh.
“These are all the progress reports of businesses that the Malfoy money is invested in. The papers at the back are requests and questions. You are twelve now, Dragon. It’s about time that you took up some of your duties as Lord.”
Draco sighed, but took the folder. “Yes, mother.”
She smiled and left him to his work.
…
“Moony!” Harry called happily when they found the werewolf at the table for lunch.
“How are you two?” He asked as he pulled Harry close.
“We’re fine.” Draco answered and took his seat. He did give the Wolf a smile to let the man know he was as happy to see him as Harry was, but wasn’t as comfortable displaying it.
“I’m glad.” Remus smiled back, letting the blonde know that he understood and wasn’t bothered by it.
“Are you okay?” Harry asked worriedly, his green eyes dark with fear.
“I’m fine, cub. Just tired.” He ruffled his hair and Harry went to his seat reluctantly. “What did you do today?”
Draco complained about the headache politics gave him and Harry told him about the test he took and had gotten a B+. “Where’s Dad?” Harry asked.
“Working on a potion.” Remus laughed. “Where else would he be?”
They all laughed. Even Narcissa.
…
Harry and Draco went to the Room of Requirement with Narcissa, all of them Disillusioned so no one would be able to see them on the way, after lunch and found only the Slytherins there. Hermione was at the Burrow with Ron and Ginny, mourning their older brother. Neville was at home mourning his parents. They wouldn’t be back till Friday.
“Hello, Draco. Potter.” Pansy greeted with a smile. “We weren’t sure you’d make it.”
“We’re doing better.” Draco explained and summoned a broom. “Do you guys feel up to a game?”
“Sure.” Vince shrugged and kicked off the ground. “But how will we do teams?”
“Greg, Harry, and I against you and Pansy.” Draco smiled sweetly.
“That’s not fair!” Pansy pouted, but went to fly next to Vince.
Draco shrugged and the games began. It was nice to forget everything for a little while. He wasn’t kidding when he said the delicate politics involved in the Malfoy businesses gave him a headache and the horror of the war was never far from his mind. He was only holding up as well as he was because he knew he had to be strong for his baby. Harry was not nearly as okay as he pretended. Under the surface of his cheer was a hard ball of fear, determination, horror, and faith.
Harry only played for an hour before his hands began to tremble and Draco ordered him down to rest. He smiled happily, touched that Draco had noticed his fatigue and was taking care of him. But his dreams were dark and bloody. Draco swooped down from the sky as soon as he felt his baby’s growing distress and sat holding him till the dreams went calm. The others said nothing about this. Instead, they came down and sat with him, talking about nothing and doing their best to cheer their leader up. Draco smiled at them to let them know he appreciated their efforts.
“It’s time for dinner.” Narcissa broke in softly.
The blonde nodded and shook his friend, “Harry. It’s time to go.”
Green eyes blinked open sleepily. Harry looked up at Draco and grabbed a hold of his braid before rolling on his side and closing his eyes again. Draco could help the large smile that touched his lips as he felt Harry’s warm affection bubble up from one glance. “Come on, Baby.” He whispered right in Harry’s ear. “Let’s get something to eat.”
Harry opened his eyes again and yawned. Draco helped him to his feet and they stood patiently as Narcissa charmed them. They said goodbye to the Slytherins and made their way to their rooms, Harry’s hand in Draco’s the whole way.
…
Severus ate with them and gave Harry a potion to drink before they headed up to Dumbledore’s office to practice dueling. During which, Severus attacked their mental barriers, but the boys did well and were grinning when Severus told them so on the way back to their rooms. They had a snack of cake and ice cream and took a bath. Severus tucked them in before retiring to his own bed with the Wolf.
…
Harry woke in the middle of the night to stomach cramps. Draco had been pulled aside after dinner by his mother and was told about Harry’s borderline health, so he knew why his baby was hurting. Harry didn’t complain and didn’t ask what was wrong with him. Just quietly said sorry for waking him and lay still while rubbing at his stomach. Draco hated the Dursleys. Because of them, Harry learned to suffer silently. Well, at least he wouldn’t have to suffer alone ever again. He curled around his friend and added his hand to Harry’s, rubbing gentle circles on his stomach.
“You should go back to sleep.” Harry whispered.
“I’m fine.” Draco promised and kissed his temple. “Just relax. We’ll go to sleep together.”
Harry smiled in the dark and let his friend’s body heat relax him. “Thank you, Ray.”
“I love you, Baby.” Draco answered softly.
“Love you too.” Harry answered just before falling back to sleep.
Draco stayed up for a while after that, just rubbing Harry’s stomach and making sure the boy didn’t wake again. When he was sure his friend was sleeping peacefully, he allowed his eyes to close.
…
The interrupted sleep from the night before didn’t affect Draco, but Harry wasn’t as strong. His body was fragile and still healing. When they got to the Room of Requirement, Harry went to his spot under the tree and went to sleep. Draco flew with his friends until Narcissa said it was time to go and they got Harry up. Severus gave him another potion after dinner and they went up to duel and Occlude while under attack. That night Harry woke again, and again Draco waited out the cramps with him and rubbed his stomach until he could sleep.
…
“Baby. Wake up.” Draco called gently.
Harry opened his eyes and was grateful that Draco was blocking the sunlight from hitting his face directly. He squinted and sat up with a yawn.
Pansy grinned, “You’re really an adorable kid, Potter. You know that?”
“Oh, he knows.” Draco laughed.
Harry blushed and shoved him. “Shut up, you.” He stood and stretched. “So who won?”
“Do you even have to ask?” Draco smirked and wrapped his arms around Harry. The brunette leaned into the blonde, and Pansy cooed at them.
Vince and Greg rolled their eyes. “We’ll see you tomorrow, Draco.”
“Bye.” Draco nodded at them. “Better luck next time, Pansy!”
“Listen to Harry and shut it.” She said sweetly and blew a kiss before leaving with the two Slytherin teens.
“Ready?” Narcissa asked the boys.
“Yes.” Draco nodded.
She cast the spell, and they headed for the door. Narcissa was in the lead with Draco following only a step or two behind her. Harry came last, holding the bigger boy’s hand. It was funny, he mused. He would never have held anyone’s hand like this when he was twelve the first time around, and he didn’t think Draco would have either. And he still wouldn’t appreciate holding Ron’s hand or Hermione’s. But now felt completely normal, even enjoyable, to hold Draco’s hand.
Harry shrugged. It was only normal seeing as how his feelings for Draco were much stronger than his feelings had ever been for either Ron or Hermione (at least, so far as he knew). For a moment, he wondered if that should be strange but dismissed the thought. He grew up with Draco, except for the few days Narcissa had taken him away. The blonde had helped him through his fears and he’d been happier than he’d ever been. It was only natural to be closer to the blonde than to his other friends. Right?
He was jerked from his musings when a bright light suddenly flashed and a concussion of condensed air slammed into him. He fell with a startled yell next to Draco, blinded. Draco reached for his wand, hands shaking with his own fear and Harry’s, but just when his fingers closed around it something snapped around his throat. An echoing click told him that the same had been done to Harry. And then everything got tight.
It was painful at first but only because he was pushing against the invisible cold enclosure instinctively. Hyperventilating, still in shock and blind to the outside world, Draco forced himself to calm and stop reflexively pushing against the barrier. The waves of pain receded slowly. The first thing he became aware of was Harry’s emotions.
Thank Merlin! The barrier at least hadn’t broken that. Harry was scared but was not in very much pain. He must have figured it out quicker than Draco and stopped fighting whatever imprisoned their magic. He knew there were devices, spells, and potions that could do it, but he’d never heard of it in the form of a collar.
He blinked his eyes open and realized he was being carried, still Disillusioned, over someone’s shoulder through a very busy Hogsmeade. His hands were tied at the small of his back and he couldn’t make a noise even though he was trying to scream. When he finally got the bright idea to struggle, a fist impacted hard with his side and made everything fade to a painful black again for several long moments.
He came too when he was flung down hard on his backside next to Harry by the Shrieking Shack in about two inches of snow. Harry was in the same exact condition. His hands were tied behind him and his mouth was tightly shut. His eyes were wide with fear and his glasses were nowhere to be seen. They definitely weren’t dressed for being outside and both were shivering. He got a good look at the collar around Harry’s neck. It was black and shiny, like a band of solid shadow. He shivered in disgust that an identical foul device was touching his skin. Harry’s fear was strong, but Draco still felt a bit detached—he knew he should have been pissed as hell.
There was no one else around except for their abductors, and Draco turned his attention to them. One was Theodore Nott. One was Blaise Zabini. And the third was Devon Zabini. They were dressed warmly, and only Devon seemed calm. Blaise was looking away, his cheeks red with shame and distress. Theo looked nervous and excited, his eyes devouring them triumphantly. Draco’s anger began to stir.
“You’re looking good, Draco.” Theo drawled with a large smirk. “Like the hair.”
“We don’t have time for this.” Devon glanced at the young Slytherin. “Go and get the portkey.”
“Why doesn’t Blaise do it?” Theo glared, but when Devon focused his cold blue eyes on him he turned and did as he was told. Blaise spoke up as soon as he was out of earshot.
“Can’t we Obliviate Draco and let him go?” He asked quietly, eyes pleading with his brother.
“The Dark Lord wants them both.” Devon answered. He didn’t even look at his younger brother. His attention was focused on his two captives.
“But once he has Potter then he won’t really notice that Draco…”
“No.” Devon interrupted, and Blaise fell silent.
Draco was glad. He didn’t want to go anywhere without Harry. He needed to think of a plan. He looked over at Harry again, hoping for inspiration. The Disillusionment charm was fading. It would be down in moments. Devon noticed as well and frowned deeply. He lifted his wand and pointed it at them. Before he could cast a spell, Theo came back now wearing a long golden chain and coin around his neck. He took it off and handed it to Devon with a mock bow.
“Good.” He took the necklace and slipped it around his neck. “I will tell the Dark Lord of your success and skill. Both of you need to get back now before you are missed.”
“What!” Theo cried, outraged. “I’m going with you to deliver Potter!”
“No, you are not.” Devon answered calmly. “Are you going against his orders?”
“You just want all the credit for yourself!” Theo’s wand snapped up and aimed at the older man.
Devon didn’t even bother raising his wand. He kept it down by his side and subtly pointed it at the teenager. His lips never moved, but Theodore staggered backward, his arm falling limp, and his wand landing in the snow. His brown eyes were wide and dull.
“He won’t be a problem. Say he drank too much.” Devon ordered his brother. Blaise didn’t say anything, but he went to Theo’s side to help keep him standing. “I’ll see you later, little bro. Take care of yourself.”
Draco glared fiercely up at his friend’s brother as the man put one arm around him and another around Harry and pulled them close to his sides. He whispered a word Draco couldn’t quite catch and then he felt the hook of the portkey. When they landed, Draco slammed hard into his kidnapper and let out an ‘oomph’ as his breath was knocked out of him. He had no idea where he was. There were trees all around and, even though there was no snow on the ground, it was still cold.
“You boys alright?” Devon asked as he carefully let them go. His hands still hovered by them to make sure they wouldn’t fall over.
Harry wobbled, but remained standing. Draco didn’t even sway, his silver eyes like quicksilver in his fury. “Of all the idiotic questions!” He spat, not surprised when he found the silence spell gone. “How do you think we are?”
Devon met his stare and his face never changed from impassive. Draco continued to glare, but deemed it wise not to say anything more. Harry was shaking with both fear and cold. Draco went to his side and leaned against him. He wanted to reassure his friend, but didn’t dare say anything; he might make Devon think more restraints were in order. Harry’s fear calmed without him saying anything, and he put half his weight against Draco’s shoulder.
“You will follow me. There will be no running and no talking. I will hurt you.” Devon told them calmly. When he got no answer, he turned and began to walk through the forest.
Draco followed several feet behind him and Harry walked right at his side. Draco nodded for Harry to go ahead of him and the boy did so without question. Draco examined the bindings. It looked like rope but was grey. From touching his own bindings, he knew it was smooth as metal, but light as rope. Therefore it was a magical combination of both. That meant the spell would have to weaken or even wear off if it wasn’t reinforced. Devon was the most likely caster, so they only had to get away from him. Draco snorted. Easier said than done.
They were walking for only an hour when Harry began to stumble. Fear and portkeying and the damn collars blocking them from their magic had drained him. Devon walked on, oblivious. Draco snarled at his back and tried to support Harry as best he could by walked right alongside of him and allowing the smaller boy to lean against him. When Harry tripped, however, Draco couldn’t take it anymore.
“We need to rest!” He snapped and knelt by his fallen friend.
“No.” Devon answered, not even bothering to turn and look back. “Keep up.”
“We can’t, you dolt! This isn’t a ploy!” Draco yelled before turning to look at Harry. “You alright?”
“Yeah.” Harry panted. “Got a stitch in my side.”
They both looked up as they heard Devon stop and start coming back for them. Harry’s eyes went wide and he hid half behind Draco instinctively. Draco’s own breath was coming fast due to his anger and Harry’s terror.
“I told you I would hurt you. Get up.” Devon said calmly.
“What is your problem?” Draco demanded. “We can’t keep up, alright! No threats are going to change what we are physically capable of.”
“I disagree. Crucio.”
Pain exploded behind Draco’s eyes. His whole body spasmed and cramped, and he was howling with pain. It seemed to last forever as he coiled tight into a defensive ball. The agony was building and he knew he would shatter and…. it stopped. Over his own whimpers and wet sobbing gasps, the sound of cursing and blows came to his ears.
He blinked the hot tears from his eyes to see Harry biting into the man’s now wandless hand. Devon was punching Harry in the head and back, screaming for him to let go. His legs were getting into it now, but Harry’s jaw would not open. There was a stream of blood dripping down his chin and from Devon’s fingers.
Draco got to his feet and staggered. His muscles screamed for him to stop moving, to just lay still and wait for everything to stop throbbing with pain. But this was their only chance. He screamed and charged Devon, knocking the wind out of the man with a head-butt. They all crashed to the ground. Draco was hitting with his head, biting, kneeing, and kicking. He was screaming like a wild animal. It hurt, and he couldn’t think of anything except to stop it from ever hurting like that again.
“Ray!” Harry screamed. “Ray! Draco, stop! Ray, please!”
It took a moment for the meaning of Harry’s words to come clear and he forced himself to still from his mindless attack. He could hardly breathe and his heart was pounding like a sledgehammer against his ribs. He staggered backward a few steps and collapsed to his knees. Devon was unconscious. At some point, Harry’s and his hands were released of their bindings and Draco had begun using them in his vicious fury to destroy Devon. There was blood in his mouth and down his chin. It was under his nails and his feet hurt from kicking the man so hard and for so long.
“Ray…” Harry sobbed and clung to the blonde. “Are… are you… alright?”
“Yeah.” He rasped. His throat was on fire and his voice was hoarse. “We can’t stay here. We’ve got to move.”
He forced himself back over to Devon’s battered body. He was shocked at how much damage they had done. He couldn’t even remember doing half of that. Devon’s face was already swelling with several bruises and his clothes were torn revealing ugly scratches. The way his chest was rising and the way his breathing was wet and ragged, Draco knew they had broken a few of Devon’s ribs.
Draco didn’t regret it, but he wasn’t proud either. The closest words he could find to describe how he felt was grimly satisfied. He yanked the necklace off the man’s neck and searched all his pockets, taking everything he found in case they were portkeys as well. He gestured Harry to grab Devon’s wand and the boy scrambled to obey.
“We should kill him. He’s going to come after us. He’ll get more Death Eaters and we’ll be caught.” He realized.
Harry stood at his side and shook. His green eyes were filled with understanding and horror. Draco winced as a chaotic cloud of emotion and distress rose in his chest. He couldn’t even begin to try and decipher what his friend was feeling. It was strong and snarled all together. He gripped Harry’s shoulders hard and shook him to get him to focus on his words.
“We have to do this. Do you understand?”
“He’s Blaise’s brother.” Harry pointed out weakly. It wasn’t exactly an argument, just stating the facts and consequences of what they were going to do.
“He’s a Death Eater.” Draco said grimly. “He will turn us over to be killed, and he will torture us. We have to be near a Death Eater camp. We… know… we know what they are capable of. And you are the Boy-Who-Lived. I… I won’t let them kill you.”
Harry nodded weakly. Tears were streaming down his cheeks, but the cloud of howling emotion was lessening. Draco could now recognize understanding, remorse, guilt, and horror. Draco felt sick to his stomach and desperate and frightened. But he had to be strong for Harry. He had promised himself he would protect his friend. He wouldn’t allow him to be hurt and killed, and he couldn’t imagine the horrors that awaited Harry if he were ever brought before Voldemort while vulnerable and powerless. He couldn’t allow that to happen.
“Don’t look.” He said softly and brushed Harry’s bangs from his eyes. “Go over there. I’ll be quick.”
“No.” Harry whispered, determination rising over his other painful emotions. “You aren’t doing this alone. I will stand by you till the end.”
Draco choked on a sob and hugged Harry tight for a brief moment. “Okay. We need to hurry…” He turned and approached Devon. He still couldn’t do magic because of the damn collar. He’d have to do this the muggle way. But how? Harry must have sensed his uncertainty for he picked up a rock just a bit bigger than a closed fist and handed it to him. Draco took it and stepped up to Devon’s head. Oh sweet Merlin… but he had to. He had to survive. He had to protect Harry.
Harry came up to his side. He had a rock as well. He really was seeing this through with Draco. He was crying. Draco hated it and suddenly couldn’t stand the thought of Harry bringing that rock down on the unconscious man. With a yell, he shoved Harry backward and spun back around, bringing the rock down with all his strength. It connected with a wet crack. Blood began to pour from Devon’s head. Draco dropped the rock and stumbled away to vomit. Harry came to his side, but Draco pushed him away again. The brunette cried helplessly as Draco wiped his mouth.
“Let’s go.” He growled and walked away as quickly as he could in the opposite direction Devon had been leading them.
Harry followed, his arms wrapped tightly around himself. His eyes never left the blonde’s braid. He was filled with sorrow, love, remorse, and guilt. Draco reached back for his hand, and Harry took it, clung to it tightly, and Draco felt grateful that Harry still loved him and didn’t flinch away from touching him. He never even noticed that he was crying too.
…
Narcissa ran into Severus’ rooms. Her eyes were wild with panic, but she spoke clearly when she saw that Severus and Remus were back from their meeting with Dumbledore. “The boys were abducted.”
Severus jumped to his feet with a hiss and Remus stood with his eyes wide with shock.
“The Slytherins had just left from the Room of Requirement. I charmed the boys and myself to be unnoticeable and we exited the room. I saw no one, heard nothing, and there was a huge flash of light and a wave of magic threw me into the wall. I blacked out and when I awoke the hallway was empty. The boys are gone. Someone must have charmed themselves or taken a potion to be able to see through the Disillusionment charm I put on us.”
Severus ran passed her, Remus following, but they split into different directions. Without saying a word, Remus knew what his mate wanted of him, so he raced to the headmaster’s office to get assistance and tell Albus what had happened. Severus was going to the Slytherin common room to see who was missing and why. Narcissa hurried back to the scene of the crime to see if she could find any clue she may have overlooked.
…
They had only been walking for maybe half an hour when they came upon a very small trickling stream. It was small, but it was enough. Draco dropped to his knees and began to wash off his hands and face. Harry knelt upstream and cupped his hands and drank from them. They were shaking faintly and he knew he was coming close to pushing himself too hard. He would collapse soon if they continued like this, but he knew they couldn’t stop either. So he said nothing and did his best to hide his weakness from Draco.
Draco wasn’t fooled, but there was nothing he could do about it. He’d offer to carry Harry when it got too bad, but the longer Harry could walk on his own, the better their chances were. He was strung tight as a bow, listening for pursuit, but caught no trace of it yet. That didn’t really mean anything though. As soon as Devon was found, the Death Eaters would use spells to find them. They had to get far enough away that the spells would give vague answers or not work at all. Maybe the damn collars would help keep them from being tracked.
“Let’s go.” He helped Harry stand and they continued their quick pace.
It wasn’t long, only about forty-five minutes or so, when Harry couldn’t walk anymore. There were fine tremors in his thighs and his hands were shaking violently. Black dots swarmed in his vision and he couldn’t catch his breath. Draco knelt by him and he weakly apologized, deeply ashamed that he was so weak when Draco needed him to be strong.
“Shhh… It’s alright, Baby.” Draco said gently. “It’s not your fault. Here. Climb onto my back. I’ll carry you.”
Harry did as he was told and for once was grateful he was so small and light. Draco usually could carry Harry easily, but he was weak from the Crucio and their hike. His legs quivered under him as he stood, but he was able to lock his knees. When he was steady, he took a step and then another.
Harry was limp, unconscious by the feel of the sudden stillness of his emotions. Draco clinched his teeth hard and walked on. The sun had fallen and he had to squint hard to watch out for things that could trip him. He was already breathing heavy, but he learned that taking deep breaths in and out helped. Tears were falling from his eyes again. This time because of exhaustion. But he couldn’t stop. The Death Eaters would find them if he did.
…
“Nothing.” Severus ground out. Albus, Remus, Narcissa, and he had found nothing to tell them who had taken the boys or where they could be now. “Absolutely nothing.” The glass in his hand shattered. He was up in the headmaster’s office. Narcissa and his mate were sitting in the chairs in front of Albus’ desk. Albus was leaning back tiredly in his chair and rubbing his hands over his face. Severus stood at the back of the room and paced furiously.
“There is the location spell I could perform.” Narcissa said tightly. “As a Malfoy, I can cast it and it will lead me to the Family Lord. It will be very evident though. Anyone magical near my son will be able to feel it while it is working.”
“If by chance they have managed to escape, then that would not be a wise course.” Albus lowered his hands and revealed his dull eyes.
“But that may be what we will have to resort to.” Remus said softly. “Narcissa, is there… Is there a way for you to tell if the Malfoy Lord has been… killed?”
“I will know if that happens.” She answered, lowering her head to hide her fear and tears. “Merlin, don’t let that happen.”
“We have to do SOMETHING!” Severus roared.
“Calm down. We must think clearly.” Albus snapped. “Where would they be taken? To Voldemort most likely. Where is Voldemort? If we knew that we could send out Order members to search the area between Hogwarts and that location.”
“I will question my Slytherins under Vertasium and try to find out.” Severus said coldly. It was an extreme resort, but the situation called for desperate measures. If anyone found out or one of the children had an ill reaction to the potion, he and Dumbledore would be in a world of trouble. They could both land in Azkaban.
“Be sure they do not remember.” Albus called, and Severus snarled over his shoulder at the implication that he didn’t already know what to do.
“What can we do?” Remus asked.
“You will go to Grimmauld Place and update the Order. I will stay here and wait for Severus’ findings. Narcissa… Do as you wish, but stay close so that we can inform you of any new information.” The two nodded and left the office. Dumbledore sighed and rubbed at his forehead. “Oh, my dear boy. What have you gotten yourself into this time?”
…
Draco couldn’t walk any further and collapsed at the base of a wide tree after gently setting Harry down. His legs burned in agony, and he whimpered, certain they would never work again. It was pitch black now. The moon had gone above the canopy and very little light could make its way through. Harry woke groggily. It was freezing now that he didn’t have Draco’s back against him.
“Ray… Are you hurt?” He asked when he heard his friend’s near silent sobs. When Draco didn’t answer, Harry crawled over to him and into his lap, practically lay on top of him. Draco sighed in slight relief as Harry’s warmth covered and soaked into him. “Tell me where it hurts.”
“Legs.” He croaked.
Harry nodded and reached down. Using both his hands, he gently massaged Draco’s thighs and worked his way down. Draco stiffened and twitched behind him, hissing in pain and relief as Harry’s slender fingers worked. It took a good long while before Draco’s moan and groans died out and his legs were limp with relief. Harry giggled and turned back around to face the blonde and lay against Draco’s chest. His arms came around to embrace his friend and his hands played with Draco’s braid and the strands of hair that had fallen free.
“I’ll keep watch. Sleep.” Harry whispered soothingly. A soft snore was his only answer.
…
Draco woke to Harry softly shaking him at dawn. He felt sore and was starving, but rested. Harry looked tired, but not too badly. He smiled weakly, and Harry mirrored him. They were cold, but not as cold as they would have been alone. As Draco stood on his stiff limbs, he was almost glad that they would be walking. It would warm them up. He helped Harry to his feet, and they set off.
“Was there any disturbances last night?” He asked.
“Not really.” Harry shrugged. “A few rabbits went passed us and a fox, but that’s it.”
“I wonder why no one’s come looking for us. Do you think they’ve found… you know…?” Draco blushed. He couldn’t bring himself to say his name. He shoved the memories of what he had done away viciously. He didn’t have time for that now.
“I don’t know.” Harry answered. “Maybe they have and they can’t find us.”
“That would be great.” Draco sighed.
…
It had taken most of the night to question all of his Slytherins and he only got vague answers. Voldemort was camped somewhere in south Romania. There was a lot of ground to cover between Hogwarts and there. He climbed the steps up to Albus’ office two at a time. The old wizard was waiting there behind his desk. The others weren’t present.
“South Romania.” He said quickly and took the seat Albus gestured to. He needed to conserve his energy. With that in mind, he accepted the hot tea that Albus handed to him.
“That’s unfortunate. The furthest country to the east we are on good terms with is Germany.”
“That would be why Voldemort set his camp there.” Severus sneered.
Albus sighed and stood. “We need to inform the Order and pool our resources. Find Narcissa and bring her with you when you come.”
Severus nodded and went to do as he was told. His anxiety and fear was a hot tight ball in his chest, but he kept it at bay with all his skill. He couldn’t help his sons if he couldn’t think straight. An energy potion wouldn’t be amiss either.
…
“I… Can’t…” Harry panted and with a moan, sank to his knees. He was cold and shaking and felt weak and dizzy. He was so hungry that his stomach was cramping. He had long experience with going hungry and still working due to the Dursleys, but it seemed his stamina wasn’t what it once was.
Draco stopped and looked back at his friend. He himself was in a numb zone of fatigue and hunger. His feet were moving of their own accord now. But seeing Harry suffer sharpened his mind and made him feel stronger. He went and sat by his friend, pulling him into an embrace to try and warm them both. Harry settled himself in Draco’s lap willingly and wrapped himself around him. Draco smiled tiredly and let his forehead rest against Harry’s shoulder.
“Sorry, Ray.” Harry said once he had the breath to speak.
“Shhh… We’ll rest for a while and if you still can’t go on, I’ll carry you again.”
Harry nodded, biting his lip. He wished they had their magic. He could catch them food that way. Unfortunately, all the prying at their necks had resulted in nothing. The collars were made of some kind of stone, they guessed, and were seamless. There was no way they could get them off.
“Can you walk?” Draco asked, bringing Harry out of his thoughts. The brunette was startled to realize his eyes were shut and he didn’t have the energy to lift his head from Draco’s shoulder or open them. “I’ll take that as a no.” The blonde struggled for several minutes, but eventually he had Harry secured on his back and was walking again.
…
“There is no Ministry or Government guiding magic and its uses in Romania.” Shacklebolt spoke. The whole Order was sitting around the table he stood at and listened to every thing he said with grim or worried faces. “That will help and hinder us. It will help because technically there is no group to be offended when we enter their country. It will hinder us because they won’t help us or speak to us to tell us anything they know. The best course of action is to avoid all locals.”
“Who is going to search and how much of Romania are we going to cover?” Remus asked.
Albus summoned a map of Romania onto the table. “Our information says the boys were being taken to the south near Alexandria. I recommend making this city our base of operations and work in groups, circling out from this city.”
A/N: I know Alexandria is an Egyptian city, but the map I consulted of Romania said there was a city named Alexandria south west of Bucharest. I chose it because it is surrounded by forest and the population density is high, but not too high.
“There are twenty-one of us, but obviously not all of us can go to Romania and join the search.” Severus pointed out.
“I cannot go. I must return to the school.” Albus said gravely. “Elphias, you have done much for us during your many years. It would be best of you remained behind. Madam Rosmerta, you have your bar to tend and cannot afford to raise suspicions by leaving your post now. Arabella, you are valuable, but your skills lie elsewhere. As for the Weasleys… You are still mourning the loss of your eldest son. I would understand if one or all of you could not join this mission.”
“Ron and Ginny are at the Burrow. Hermione as well.” Mrs. Weasley informed them. “I will stay behind with them so that the others can search for Harry.” The two Weasley men nodded.
“Very well.” Albus bowed his head in respect. “We appreciate the help. Minerva…”
“No. I will go.” She shook her head. “I am still in mourning, but my family will understand my absence.”
“Same here. My daughter and I will both help look for the boys.” Andromeda spoke up. She had married a muggle, but that hadn’t stopped her husband from being targeted by the Death Eaters because her daughter was an Auror and Order member set against Voldemort. Nymphadora had brought her to Grimmauld Place to keep her safe after her father’s funeral and Andromeda had decided to join the Order as well. She would bring down the bastards that had taken her beloved husband.
“So be it. If there is anyone who wishes not to go, speak up.” Albus looked around the table. No one raised their voice. “Very well. There are sixteen of you left. That will make four three man teams. We will divide the area around Alexandria into four sections aligning with the compass points. Each group will take a section to search and work their way outwards. The team leaders will be Severus, Narcissa…”
At the looks of distrust and anger that crossed a few faces, Albus slammed his hands on the table and said sharply, “Don’t question me. Now is not the time.” Everyone fell silent and still.
Looking sternly at everyone there, Albus continued. “As I was saying, the team leaders are Severus, Narcissa, Remus, and Kingsley. The leaders will choose who is on their team. I will be back momentarily.”
Severus ended up with Alastor Moody, Emmeline Vance, and Arthur Weasley. Remus got Minerva McGonagall, Charlie Weasley, and Rubeus Hagrid. Narcissa choose Andromeda Tonks (her sister), Mundungus Fletcher, and Hestia Jones. Shacklebolt gathered up the rest; Nymphadora Tonks, Dedalus Diggle, and Sturgis Podmore. Albus arrived minutes later with a dozen house elves. As the elves passed out packs for the search teams, Albus handed out four portkeys.
“I want quarterly reports…. That means every six hours.” Albus informed them all and was satisfied with the ready agreement he received. “Good luck and be careful. There are Death Eaters around that area. Be prepared to fight.”
…
“Baby…” Draco croaked hoarsely. His mouth was so damned dry. His lips were cracked and his skin felt like parchment. “Harry… Water…”
Harry lifted his head and dropped off of Draco’s back. The blonde staggered at the change and Harry had to grab his arm to keep him standing. In front of them was a muddy stream. Both boys fell to their knees and drank thirstily. Nothing had ever tasted so good. This was really weird, Draco thought, since he could feel the dirt making his teeth gritty and that alone would have put him off had this been normal circumstances. They drank for long minutes, until their empty bellies actually swished with water. They fell back with sighs of relief.
“You okay?” Harry asked, looking over at the blonde.
Draco nodded and looked up at the sky. It was about noon. Merlin, he was so damn hungry.
“Does your back hurt?” Harry asked with a blush. “I can massage it for…” He froze; his eyes going wide as he sat ramrod straight.
Draco looked around frantically as he felt Harry’s fear. “What?” He whispered.
“I felt magic…” Harry breathed near silently. “It’s like a little tingling against the barrier the collars make.”
“Do you know what direction?” Draco asked, knowing Harry was more aware of his magic and therefore the barrier than him and trusting completely in his senses.
“To the right… I’m… I’m not sure how far or anything…” Harry shook his head.
Draco looked to the right, but could hear or see nothing. It was possible they had gotten turned around while walking last night, but he had thought he was going in a straight line away from Devon. He jumped to his feet stiffly and grabbed Harry’s hand, pulling him up. He went at his fastest pace, which was only about a half-jog by this point and went in the opposite direction of where Harry felt the magic.
“Do you still feel it or was it just a momentary flare?” He asked quietly.
“I still feel it.” Harry’s voice trembled with fear.
Draco’s hand clenched tightly around Harry’s. “Is it getting stronger? Weaker?”
“The same. It’s just a faint pressure against the barrier.”
“Tell me… if anything changes.” He panted, already getting tired, but not willing to go slower.
Chapter Twenty
Harry could hardly breathe. He had felt the magic about half-an-hour ago and he wasn’t going to make it much longer. His head was fuzzy and he no longer felt the cold. His legs burned and kept threatening to give out. Draco was pulling him along by the hand and the blonde wasn’t fairing much better.
Draco was breathing hard and stumbled over roots and rocks every few minutes. Harry opened his mouth to beg for a rest, but no sound escaped. Closing his eyes tight, he swallowed hard. The little saliva he could work up felt like glass going down his throat. He grimaced and collapsed, almost pulling Draco down with him.
“Harry!” Draco cried out hoarsely. He knelt by Harry and rolled him onto his back.
Harry’s face was white and it looked like he was struggling to breathe. Draco quickly propped him up and rubbed his back. Harry wheezed, his arms limp and head hanging. Frightened by the panic and disorientation growing through their link, Draco gently put his hand on his friend’s forehead and tilted it back on his shoulder. He gasped. Harry’s head was hot!
“Baby, what hurts?” He croaked worriedly.
Harry’s mouth worked, but nothing came out. Tears burned his eyes, feeling helpless and afraid. The pressure against the barrier was still there, unchanging. The Death Eaters would find them, but he literally couldn’t move. He couldn’t even breathe at the moment.
“Shhh, just rest for now…” Draco stared behind them. “Is someone still using magic?”
Harry nodded weakly and pointed.
“Alright… Get on my back. I’ll find a stream and we’ll stop there.”
Draco groaned as he stood. Harry wasn’t heavy, but any added weight was torture to his abused body. The plus side was within minutes he was sweating. He hadn’t felt truly warm since they had been abducted (was it really only a day ago? It felt like weeks!), but Harry was radiating heat. Draco trudged on, panting and gasping, desperately looking for water.
…
The first report was due in from the Order and Dumbledore waited by the fireplace in his office. Green fire flared up and Arthur’s head appeared. He reported that Severus was leading them through the eastern section and they had found nothing as of yet. From Remus’ team, Minerva’s face appeared and reported a similar lack of findings in the north section.
Sturgis Podmore was the chosen messenger for Kingsley’s team. He was a square-jawed wizard with thick straw-colored hair and was about two years older than Severus. He reported they had found nothing so far in the west section. From Narcissa’s team, Hestia Jones, a pink-cheeked and black-haired witch, reported the same from the south section.
Albus thanked them for their reports and again repeated they should be careful. When they were released from the fire, the four men and women exchanged a more thorough report about terrain and local muggles and wizards before heading back out to their teams. Once they got outside the city boarders, they would apparate back to their teams.
…
Draco had slowed to a staggering walk. He was exhausted and Harry seemed to get heavier and heavier on his back. Just when he thought he’d have to stop, Harry tapped his shoulder. Sighing with relief, he knelt and allowed his friend to slip off. Harry fell with a thump and grimaced as it jarred his painful headache.
Draco turned to face him and ran his shaking hands over Harry’s fevered face. “Are you alright?” He rasped.
Harry nodded and croaked painfully, “The magic is gone.”
“It is?” Draco perked up. “Thank Merlin.” He fell over onto his back and stared dully up at the forest canopy. “I’m so hungry.” He moaned, curling up around his empty middle. “And I could sleep for a year.”
“Hear that?” Harry groaned, sitting stiffly, and ignoring his friend’s complaints. He couldn’t do anything about them.
Draco sat up with a frown, “Tell me that wasn’t thunder.”
Harry nodded and climbed slowly to his feet. “We need shelter.”
Draco hurried to support him and Harry took his arm thankfully. Crying with frustration, Draco guided Harry as he began to walk once more. His feet were throbbing. Dirt was caked on his exposed skin; hands, neck, face. His hair was still braided, but twigs and leaves were stuck in it and a few strands had fallen free. Harry looked as bad as him, maybe worse, since his face was flushed and his eyes were shinny with illness. He’d never been more desperate or frightened or hopeless. Why go on? Where were they even going? If things didn’t change soon, they’d die without the help of the Death Eaters.
“Water.” Harry croaked and fell to his knees.
Draco’s head snapped up and he saw the stream up ahead. He felt like jumping for joy. This time if they had to run away again, he’d follow the damn thing. He wasn’t about to go without it ever again. Draco dragged Harry a few feet and the smaller boy managed to crawl a bit. Both fell on the water with hungry mouths.
They drank frantically. Harry drank too fast and had to throw himself away as he vomited. Draco winced and rubbed at his back sympathetically. His stomach felt a bit rebellious as well. After returning to the stream and drinking a bit more slowly, Harry curled up on his side with a moan.
“Harry…” Draco bit his lip worriedly. He took off his sweater and dipped the sleeve in the cold stream water. Shivering, he pulled Harry’s head in his lap and soothed Harry’s forehead and cheeks with the cold, wet cloth. Harry’s eyes didn’t even flicker. “Don’t be sick. Please, Baby.” Draco rocked and cried. He didn’t know what to do.
Not ten minutes later, thunder cracked loudly and the sky darkened. Harry jerked awake and screamed with terror. Draco wrapped him in his arms and calmed him. Blinking blurred and fevered eyes, Harry knew they had to find shelter or at least try. The rain was going to be cold.
“Need shelter.” He said weakly and used Draco to climb to his feet.
The blonde didn’t argue and slipped his damp sweater back on. His teeth were chattering and he his fear of the storm gave him sufficient motivation to keep moving. He remembered his promise, though, and followed the stream. They hadn’t gone very far when it began to rain. Just as they predicted, the water was cold. In minutes, they were soaked through. There was no shelter in sight; just trees and more trees. Draco bit his lip hard to keep from crying and continued to walk.
“Stop.” Harry staggered. He couldn’t see. Everything was swimming around him. His feet were numb and so were his hands, and even though he couldn’t remember why that was bad, he knew it was. His chest hurt and his throat itched. He’d start coughing soon, he knew. He couldn’t go on. It was hard to walk on the muddy ground and Draco was shivering violently now. Harry had stopped shivering long ago; he was too numb to be cold.
“H-h-har-rr-rry?” Draco stuttered through chattering teeth.
Oh, yeah. He had an idea, didn’t he? What was he going to say? Harry swayed. Lightening flashed and he saw the old tree again. “There’s shelter.” He pointed and stumbled over to it. He weaved, but eventually he made it. It was still raining under the branches, but not quite so hard. He sat with his back against the trunk and gestured for Draco to sit by him. The blonde did so clumsily. “Take sweater off.” Harry managed to say. He was so tired. He just wanted to sleep. Why wasn’t he sleeping?
Draco didn’t see why he shouldn’t take off his sweater. He would be just as cold without it. So he listened to his friend and took it off. Harry did the same to his and came and sat in Draco’s lap. Their bare chests were pressed tight together. Draco wrapped his hands around his friend and held him close. Merlin, this felt so good…
“Wring them out and… put them… on both of us…” Harry croaked.
Understanding what Harry meant, Draco wrung out the shirts as best he could and then put them on so that each was encircling both of them and Harry’s bare chest was still pressed up against his. Draco pulled his legs up to try and capture more body heat while Harry straddled his waist. The brunette passed out in minutes and Draco soon followed.
Unfortunately, he was only asleep for a few hours when Harry woke him with his weak coughing. Draco frowned as he felt the fluid in Harry’s lungs with each ragged breath Harry took. He was also very hot, keeping them both warm. Curling more tightly around Harry, Draco bowed his head.
He was too tired and too numb to cry, but despair welled in his heart. They were absolutely lost. Death Eaters were after them and they had no food or shelter or help of any kind. With every hour, Harry was getting worse and sitting in the rain (which was now a cold drizzle) in November wasn’t helping anything. What could he do? He had to do something! He couldn’t let Harry die! He didn’t want to die either! It wasn’t fair!
…
Arthur waited for everyone to get done reporting to Albus before passing out the energy potion Severus had made and brought along with him. He wondered just how many potions the man had on him, hidden and shrunken in his billowing black robes. Sturgis took several and handed Hestia her portion. Minerva gathered the rest.
“And you’ve found no clues whatsoever?” She asked with a despairing sigh.
“Nothing.” Arthur shook his head and the other two mimicked his action.
“How far out have you gotten?” She questioned the others.
“About thirteen miles.” Sturgis answered grimly.
“Ten.” Hestia sighed, running her hands through her short hair tiredly.
“Fourteen.” Minerva frowned.
“Thirteen.” Remus added.
“Do you think my team is moving too fast?” Minerva asked the others.
“We could be going too slowly.” Hestia shrugged. “Narcissa is determined not to miss anything.”
“We’ll just have to do our best.” Arthur smiled encouragingly. “We will find them. It’s only a matter of time.”
Sturgis shook his head and left the hotel room. Hestia followed with a single nod of her head. Minerva smiled and gripped Arthur by the shoulder before taking her leave as well. Arthur’s smile fell when he was left alone. His hands clinched. He couldn’t loose Harry. The poor boy was like a son to him and he had already lost one too many of his children. Shaking his head, he hurried from the room, careful to lock the door behind him.
…
The rain had stopped, but now it was night; cold and dark. The stream was thicker and faster after the storm and it sounded like it was right next to him, though Draco knew it was a good twenty feet away. He wasn’t sure what had woken him. It could have been many things. His body was stiff, cold, and in pain. He was weak and hungry. Harry was trembling against him and every wet gasp of air sounded like it may be his last. The fever was even higher now, making Draco’s front way too warm and his back, legs, and head were freezing cold. He was amazed he had slept at all.
“Ray…” Harry groaned. “More… magic… back… that… way…” He tilted his head to point. The magic was directly in front of Draco and behind Harry.
He bit his lip. The stream was running toward it, so if they walked up stream, they’d be getting away, but… But he really didn’t think he could carry Harry any further and Harry certainly wouldn’t be able to walk. He groaned and let his head drop so that his cheek rested against Harry’s damp hair.
“Thank you, Harry.” He whispered. “Rest. I’ll watch over you.”
Harry nodded weakly and dropped back into a restless sleep. Draco held him close. They couldn’t go anywhere. Not now. Not like this. He’d have to wait. Wait until morning or the Death Eaters found them. Damn those bastards! He thought viciously. If he could kill every single one of them, he would. He was sick of running, sick of being afraid and helpless!
He took a deep, calming breath and made himself plan. When the sun came up, when things warmed up a bit, he’d get Harry to the stream and make him drink. Then he’d get them further away. Maybe they’d find a cave or a town or find the end to this damn forest… But for now… for now, he’d close his eyes again. All he could do was rest. He’d need to be strong tomorrow.
…
They made their third report of no news to Albus, but this time they weren’t alone. Each team had sent two members back to get a few hours rest. They’d switch off at the next shift. This would make the searching slower, but they couldn’t function on potions alone and remain clear headed.
…
Draco had kept to his plan. He had gotten Harry over to the stream and made the delirious boy drink as much as he could before doing the same himself. They put their still faintly damp sweaters on and Draco hefted Harry onto his back before making his way upstream. Harry had informed him the magic was still there behind them. Draco gritted his teeth and walked. The pain in his feet and legs was getting worse and he was feeling lightheaded, but that didn’t matter anymore. All that mattered was that he kept moving.
Time passed surprisingly quickly as he drifted in and out of confused daydreams. He was pulled fully awake however when Harry went ridged on his back and his loud breathing stopped. Draco was just easing him to the ground when the pain hit and the familiar wave of vertigo that signaled the start of a vision swarmed up behind his eyes. He had just enough time to scream “Occlude!” at the top of his lungs before he passed out.
…
Voldemort glared down at his quivering followers with rage burning in his veins. Yesterday afternoon one of his prized pets had been found dead a mile outside of their camp. He had ordered Mulciber, Avery, and Nott to find out what had happened. Late that night, Avery returned to report.
Zabini had been killed by being hit in the head with a fairly heavy rock and looked mildly beaten. The Death Eaters had gone to Hogwarts to see if the little brother knew what Zabini had been involved in lately and found Blaise was missing. They had been lucky when they had gone into Hogsmeade and been approached by Nott’s son.
It seemed he and Blaise were hiding in town because they had kidnapped the Potter and Malfoy boys and didn’t want to be interrogated until it was too late for anyone to save the brats. After hearing this, Nott and Mulciber returned to Devon’s body and began searching for the missing children (Blaise had informed them of their de-aged states) while Avery came to report to Voldemort.
Voldemort had been furious that Devon had acted without telling him and then had the gall to be almost successful. To think The-Boy-Who-Lived was twelve once more and within his bloody reach! He had tortured Avery for a few hours to vent his fury, then called his Inner Circle to him and ordered them to go with Avery and help find the two boys and bring them back alive!
An hour after dawn, Avery returned again and reported the brats were being elusive. It seemed that Devon put powerful dark artifacts on the children to keep them from being able to use magic and these also interfered with their searching spells. They had to look manually. Voldemort had raged at his followers’ incompetence and tortured Avery for a while until he could think clearly once again.
When he had calmed, he called a general summons (it was these that pulled the boys into visions; they didn’t have visions when Voldemort only called a select number of his followers) and ordered all two hundred Death Eaters to scour Romania for the two boys. He threatened them all with death should the sun set with the two fugitives not found.
…
Draco woke with a groan. This time he had been behind Voldemort’s eyes, just like how Harry described the last vision, and he was terrified by what he had learned. Hundreds of Death Eaters were now searching for them. And they were to be brought to the Dark Lord alive.
Draco shuddered as he remembered feeling Voldemort’s deep fury and maddening blood-lust. He scrambled to Harry’s side. The brunette was hacking weakly and gasping for air. Draco quickly sat him up so that he could breathe easier. Harry moaned through another cough and opened his eyes. They were glassy and dilated. Draco winced as Harry’s fear and confusion and desperate need cut into him.
“Harry… Hold on to me… We have to keep moving.”
Harry pointed behind them and to the left. “…magic…”
“I know, Baby…” Draco pulled him onto his back. “Please, hold on. Harry, hold onto my neck!”
The brunette groaned and weakly wrapped his arms around the blonde’s neck. He coughed violently and choked as he tried to get in enough air. Draco began to trot, though he could only keep the pace for a few minutes before he was reduced back to a steady walk. He forced his body to obey him. They were being hunted and the predators were gaining on them and coming from two different sides now! Panting, Draco stumbled on, his eye wide and terrified.
…
Narcissa crouched close to the ground as she watched a pack of three Death Eaters walk by. Dung, her sister Andromeda, and Hestia were fanned out around her and had stilled when she did. The unsuspecting Death Eaters were surrounded. But she wasn’t sure what her next move should be.
If she attacked them, she’d alert Voldemort that there were Order members around and that could mean their deaths and the deaths of her son and Harry. Then she remembered something. Her sister… Andromeda was excellent at Memory Charms. If they captured them and questioned them, her sister could weave a spell so subtle no one would be the wiser.
…
The four Order members gathered in the hotel and shared news. Hestia quickly told them about running into the Death Eaters and finding out that the boys had escaped and were being hunted by every available member. They were running out of time. They needed to find the boys. Luckily, they also received a clue.
The boys had run from an area in Narcissa’s section and from what she could gather had fled north, which would lead them eventually into Severus’ section. So they no longer had to search the north or west, and Shacklebolt and Remus could join the others. After a quiet debate it was decided that Shacklebolt’s team would join Severus and Remus would join Narcissa.
…
Draco fell with a ragged scream of pain. Harry tumbled from his back and rolled away. His green eyes opened and he stared dumbly. His rattling cough resounded in his ears and his head hurt so badly. What would their father say to him lying on the ground? He hoped Ron was okay, though he didn’t know why he was worried about the redhead.
Wait… Where was Draco? He got to his hands and knees and looked around. It was really leafy here. Maybe he should sweep? Aunt Petunia would be so upset everything was so dirty. White blonde hair caught his attention and he crawled toward it with a smile. That disappeared instantly when he realized Draco was crying.
A high pitched whine of pain escaped the blonde’s throat and Harry frowned. That was not good. Not good at all. He felt his head clear and coughed hard. When he could breathe again, he looked his best friend over. He looked fine, if dirty. Draco will be so mad his clothes were ruined, his thoughts cut off as he saw Draco’s foot and ankle.
There was a metal circle of teeth clamped into the blonde’s flesh. Harry could see the white of bone and tendons. Strips of bloody skin were hanging through the ragged hole the teeth had made. Blood was pouring out; it smelled hot and tangy. “Draco…” Harry moaned. “Oh, no… oh, god, Ray, be okay…”
Draco couldn’t answer. He was mute with pain. Harry’s head snapped around as he heard something coming. It was faint, but he knew they were close. Harry coughed and spat out the mucus that rose in the back of his throat. Draco was hyperventilating. His eyes were wide with shock.
Harry remembered the blonde cooling his face with his own sweater. He had carried him all this way because he was so weak and now the Death Eaters were coming and they’d make Draco bleed some more. They’d make him scream. Harry closed his eyes as nausea built in him. He was weak. He was already lightheaded.
The sounds of someone coming were getting louder. If he squinted hard, he could make out shadows moving among the trees. He wouldn’t let them hurt Draco. He looked down at his friend and he felt love overwhelm him. Draco had done everything he could to save him. He had gotten hurt because of him.
“Harry…” Draco sobbed. “Baby…”
Draco’s heartbreaking cries broke Harry completely and suddenly everything exploded in a concussion of sound and light. Then he was yanked violently away from all sensation, like an accelerated portkey into a black hole. He ceased to exist. All was nothingness. Eternal echoes of nothingness.
…
Draco could hardly think past the pain. It consumed him and he would be screaming if he weren’t so weak. Hyperventilating, his head spun, and he was sure he was going to throw-up. The waves of agony came and he was helpless. Eventually, he could see again and he saw his baby crying and swaying on his knees next to him. He saw the despair and fear, though he couldn’t feel because all he could feel was pain. He begged him for help, even though he knew he wouldn’t get it.
Harry went ridged and head tipped back so his eyes stared at the canopy above their heads. Draco gasped and shielded his eyes as the collar around Harry’s throat glowed red hot and began to crumble apart. He gasped as he felt his own doing the same. They were liquefying. Magic surged around him and he could feel it again.
He was beat to the ground by the force pounding from his friend. He screamed, afraid for himself and afraid for Harry. Without warning the pain began to lessen and he looked down to see the metal horror melting away and his leg beginning to heal. It was only about halfway through when the magic disappeared like a snuffed candle. Draco gasped and his head snapped around to see Harry crumple bonelessly to the ground.
“Harry!” He cried hoarsely and crawled over to the smaller boy. He wasn’t breathing. “No! Baby! Don’t die! You can’t leave me!”
He slammed his hands on Harry’s chest over and over again. He screamed at the top of his lungs, but Harry didn’t wake. He didn’t draw breath. Hands grabbed him and flung him away. He screamed again as he saw a stranger in a black cloak kneel by his baby. Draco saw red and lashed out.
The man holding him yelled and dropped him. He launched himself at the man by Harry, but was tackled to the ground. His magic snapped around him, flinging leaves and the Death Eaters away from him. He snarled and ran at the man over Harry and this time connected. They both went down in a tangle of limbs. The other Death Eaters were firing spells, not caring who they hit.
Draco couldn’t avoid them forever and was hit. His muscles went limp and he was roughly slapped and the punched in the gut. He lay gasping and wild with grief and panic. His eyes fell on Harry and saw the smaller boy was breathing and his lungs sounded clearer. He didn’t understand at first, but his stomach dropped as realization came. Voldemort wanted them alive. That was why the Death Eater saved Harry.
“You bloody brat!” The Death Eater he had tackled spat. Draco grimaced as the glob of saliva dripped down his cheek. With an evil grin of anticipation, the man began to flick his wand, the gestures getting more violent as the complex spell spilled from his lips. “Paricreo tactus flagello excrucius!”
Draco screamed as a line of fire burned across his chest and side. Another lash and he screamed again. He could feel blood flowing down his stomach. The Death Eaters laughed and the two watching lifted him to his feet and held him up by the arms. Another lash and this time it was across his back. He arched with a weak whine of agony. Tears were streaming down his cheeks and he twitched and spasmed. They taunted him as he wept and more lashes fell slowly. Each one slicing into his skin and muscle, drawing screams from his tortured throat.
Without warning, the man holding his left arm collapsed. Thrown off balance the other Death Eater let him go and he crumbled the ground. His vision was fading in and out. The sound of fighting and spells was swallowed by the roaring in his ears. He only knew one thing that that was he wanted his baby. He crawled blindly until he hit a body and a blurry figure of Harry came clear for a moment before everything went black and he passed out. He fell on top of the smaller boy, shielding him with half his body.
…
Severus fought ferociously. His spells were violent and were fired with deadly accuracy. Icy cold rage governed his thoughts. How dare these pathetic weaklings whip his son? And was Harry alive? The boy hadn’t moved since they had arrived. A spell fired by Podmore skimmed his shoulder and he spun to see a Death Eater who was creeping up behind him fall. He grinned fiercely and continued to fight.
Moody and Shacklebolt fought side-by-side and cursed as more Death Eaters apperated in. The three who they had originally attacked must have called for help. They had to get to the boys and get out of there. They couldn’t afford fighting like this, not when the numbers were growing against them. And the boys needed medical attention. Growling, as one, the two men forced their way toward the downed twelve-year-olds.
Tonks fought two Death Eaters and was loosing ground. She cursed and cast binding spells and impeding spells. One went down and she cried out in triumph, but two more appeared in his place. She cursed again and continued to fight. Just when she thought she was going down, Diggle stepped up behind the Death Eaters ringing her and made them split their forces to confront him. The fight was on!
Emmeline Vance fell to a bone breaking curse. Her legs were both broken, but that didn’t stop her from firing from the ground. Several Death Eaters fell and she screamed with pain as she fired at more. A blasting curse threw her in the air and she fell like a rag doll. Someone screamed her name, but she didn’t know who. Everything went black when she landed and jarred her legs.
Arthur watched in horror as Emmeline went limp and a Death Eater sent a vicious cutting curse her way. He shouted out a shield spell, but was too late. Blood bloomed in the air as her throat was cut to the bone. With her windpipe severed, she suffocated in minutes. Arthur screamed in denial and horror, but was forced to concentrate as another wave of spells was aimed at him.
Narcissa and Remus’ teams ran onto the scene, drawn there by the huge concentration of magic. They leapt into battle and hurried to their comrades’ assistance. Andromeda got to her daughter just in time. Tonks was coughing up blood, her ribs were shattered on the right side and another blasting curse would have been the end of her. Narcissa and Remus slammed into the four Death Eaters keeping Severus from the children and the Potion’s Master slipped through. He dropped to his knees and with a quick spell that amplified his voice roared for the Order members to retreat.
There were a dozen sounds of apperateing and the Death Eaters desperately tried to follow. Unfortunately, tag-along apparating is chancy at best and only about seven of them actually ended up outside the front of the right hotel. They stormed in and cursed Muggles until they got the right room number. They stormed up the stairs and burst into the room to see the Order members portkey away. They cursed loudly and began to set fire to the hotel. The boys had gotten away and they knew their Master would not be pleased with them at all.
…
The portkey landed the group in an empty hall in Grimmauld Place. Their entrance signaled alarms that would have both Dumbledore and Poppy arriving in seconds. Arthur collapsed to his knees under the weight of Emmeline’s dead body. Andromeda guided her daughter against the wall and Tonks let out a scream as her shattered ribs tore into her lung. Blood gurgled up her throat and over her lips. Shacklebolt rushed to their aid.
Charlie went to help his father, who was bleeding from wounds he didn’t seem to know he had. Hestia and Hagrid ran from the room to get medical supplies and healing potions. Mundungus was sniveling in a corner with a broken arm. He fought viciously like a cornered rat during battles, but he was always useless after them. Dedalus was blind due to a spell, but was holding Minerva and staunching the wound in her shoulder. Sturgis and Narcissa stood stiffly by Remus and Severus as the two began working on the boys.
Severus quickly removed the boys from their clothes. They only got in the way and hid possible injuries. Narcissa’s hands clinched as she witnessed her son’s lacerated skin. Severus quickly cast a spell to slow the bleeding of the lashes, knowing Draco couldn’t take much more blood loss. He then switched with Remus, who had been casting general healing spells. The Wolf did so now on Draco as Severus worked to help specific damage.
Poppy and Dumbledore arrived and for a moment stood shocked as the moans, sobs, and death rattles reached their ears. Neither had seen anything like it since the end of the First War. Poppy recovered first and ordered Dumbledore to obtain more doctors. She couldn’t handle all this on her own. He disappeared immediately.
Hestia and Hagrid arrived and added to her supplies. She ordered Hagrid to inform the house elves that ten guest rooms needed to be ready for use and that once that was seen to he needed to return to the school and help wherever he could while the headmaster was away. Hestia was made into her nurse and she quickly went around the room evaluating which patients needed to be seen to first.
Tonks was the one most in need and she snapped out orders to those around her. They rushed to obey and soon the young Metamorphagus was on a conjured stretcher and was being spelled and fed potions. It was delicate work and would take a good hour. Poppy laid the ground work for the healing spells and let Andromeda and Shacklebolt supply the magic and energy for the finish. Then she rushed over to the boys. By this time the second healer had been brought in and he could handle the others with Dumbledore’s help.
She conjured two stretchers and cast extensive diagnostic spells. The readouts began to scroll and she set her mouth grimly. The boys had been gone a little over forty-nine hours and had been exposed to horrible weather conditions and stress. On top of that, they suffered abuse from enemies and emotional damage. This was going to take time to fix. She set to work; Narcissa, Severus, and Remus helped by offering their magic, strength, and hands.
…
Most of the rescue party had been tended to and were now tucked into bed in the upstairs rooms to sleep and heal. The Tonks women were sharing a room. Charlie and Arthur had opted to return home. Molly would be worried, otherwise, but they wanted to be informed of the boys’ progress.
Minerva had returned to the school to sleep in her own bed. Her shoulder still required a bandage, but should be better in a week, sooner if her magic worked to expel the dark residue from the curse. Dedalus, Hestia, and Sturgis all opted to stay even though they weren’t severely wounded. Should an attack occur at Grimmauld Place, they would be here to defend it and the wounded inside. Mundungus chose to return home and no one tried to convince him to stay. Shacklebolt wanted to remain, but had to return to home. He had to return to work the next day.
Severus, Narcissa, and Remus were the only ones from the rescue party that were awake and they sat in the kitchen with Poppy and Dumbledore, waiting to be told about their sons’ condition. It was well past midnight and Severus was so tired that he didn’t even protest when Remus leaned against him, helping to keep them both sitting up straight. Narcissa was a bit better off, having just gotten onto the scene before they apparated out.
“Well?” She demanded. “What is their condition?”
Poppy sighed and shook her head. “It’s not good, but they will heal with time. They both had severe blisters on their feet; Draco more than Harry. Both suffer from illness from long exposure to wet and cold; Harry more so than Draco. Both have circular burns on their throats that resist magical healing, but are beginning to respond, albeit slowly, to treatment. Severe exhaustion and fatigue has depleted them both and they are suffering from the first signs of starvation. Also, the flesh of Draco’s ankle was severely torn, but will be fairly simple to fix.
“More seriously, Draco shows evidence of suffering under Crucio, as well as being whipped. He suffers nerve damage and major blood loss. Both are being addressed, but treatment will be a slow process. Harry shows signs of nerve damage as well, but not from Crucio. It looks like a normal seizure. I can only guess they had a vision while they were on the run. He has also depleted his magical and physical reserve. We can’t really do anything about that except wait and keep him well fed and watered.
“What is most concerning is that he has developed pneumonia and bronchitis. His condition was delicate before he left and the stress, exposure, and starvation has weakened him completely. I have put him in a healing coma, but the illness is festering. The long fever has created damage in his brain and that will take time and intricate healing spells, and his lungs are suffering. There may be permanent scaring that will result in permanent asthma.
“We are doing everything we can to strengthen them and heal the damage done. Normally, I would say with certainty that they would both be fine, but due to their situation with their aging, I am not so sure. It will take a good two weeks for Draco to be returned to full health and Harry will need at least a month. But in just three days the boys will be at the mercy of powerful magic and their bodies will be put under great stress during the change.
“We already know that the injuries they obtain can hinder their health due to Harry being smaller than he was in Second Year. I can only imagine what will happen when they undergo the change in these conditions. They could be kept in the same condition and continue with the healing as if the growth didn’t happen, or their bodies could give out and their organs fail due to stress and weakness. I just don’t know. The best we can do is get them as strong as we can.”
“What about a Time Turner?” Narcissa asked grimly. “We can give them more time to heal.”
“I’m not sure that would be wise.” Albus shook his head. “They are already at odds with time in this condition. It may only put added stress on them. You know using a Time Turner makes use of the wizard or witch’s magic, and it is a constant drain to maintain the placement out of sync with your natural timeline. I don’t think the boys can handle that.”
“We must do something to guard their lives.” She demanded.
“And we will.” Albus answered calmly. “I have faith that the spell will not kill them; none-the-less, we will get them as strong as we can with very thorough care. You three need to rest. Sleep for a few hours. We will wake you should anything change.”
Narcissa looked mutinous, and so did Severus. Remus saw the wisdom in resting, however, and managed to talk them both into retiring for the night.
…
Poppy and the other medi-wizard, a David Lauren, worked every minute of every day on the two boys. They timed the potions by the second and got as many in the two boys as they could in the seventy-two hour time span without overdosing them. Neither boy woke once. Harry because he couldn’t, and Draco because he was that fatigued. They were fed by delicately force-apparating food in their stomachs every three hours. They began to put on weight and look healthier, but were by no means up to par when it came time for the spell to activate and return a year to their minds and bodies.
…
As soon as the magic of the transformation turned aged them a year in the space of seven hours released the now thirteen-year-old children, the two doctors rushed to their patients’ sides. Severus, Remus, Narcissa, and Dumbledore were on their heels, but kept out of the way as they watched for any sign of life or injury on their boys. Draco woke first. He looked around the room in confusion.
It took a few minutes for his eyes to clear. When they did, he began to hyperventilate with shock. It was just too overwhelming. Poppy quickly spelled him into a gentle sleep. He’d be released as soon as they were done and could give the poor child some space. She wanted to order the others from the room, but knew that would be futile. In ten minutes, she had the test results and after glancing at them, formed a plan. She carefully lifted the sleep spell and strode from the room gesturing the others after her.
They followed reluctantly. They wanted to be with the children, but desperately needed to hear the results of her tests as well. She knew it wasn’t a good idea to crowd a trauma patient. They needed time to come to grips with what happened and the reality that it was over. And as their doctor, the least she could do is maneuver for them a few minutes alone.
…
Draco woke for the second time and was glad to find himself alone in the room. It was quiet and the curtains on the window were pulled tightly shut. He didn’t know where he was, but that didn’t much matter at the moment. He knew he wasn’t with Voldemort since he remembered Madam Poppy, his mother, father, and Remus there the last time he was awake. And he felt warm and full, and that was much better than where he had been.
Once his heart calmed and he came to terms with not being on the run, he looked for Harry. His friend was in a second bed and was just stirring awake. Draco slowly sat up and dropped to the floor. He felt himself sway, feeling lightheaded, but quickly found his balance. He was crawling into bed with Harry by the time the green eyes were beginning to open.
Harry stared at his best friend. His mind was clogged with nightmarish memories of their kidnapping and the… days?... of running for their lives. Side-by-side with those, Harry found himself remembering a godfather, a rat, and a hippogriff. He could feel and taste the memories as if they were really happening, as if he were really there.
It was as if he were three people. Each one as real as the others. One Harry was still in the woods, terrified and weak. Another was trying to solve the mystery of who killed his parents. Then there was yet another Harry lying weak in a bed with a Draco Malfoy that didn’t match his new memories at all.
Draco didn’t comment on the numb dissociation he felt from his friend. He felt the same. Apathy rose up and he just lay there, staring. He couldn’t find any motivation inside to speak, move, or think. The only urge he had was the reflex to keep running. That they couldn’t stop or they’d be captured and… and he didn’t really want to think about the next part. But then he’d look around and know he was safe, so he tried to lay back and relax, but inside he was still running.
…
“What are the test results?” Narcissa demanded of Poppy as soon as they reached the kitchen.
“It is better than I could have hoped.” She smiled. “The boys’ injuries and illnesses are gone. They are as well as they would be if they were left to heal naturally for a year. Draco suffers minimal scarring from his physical wounds, but that can be treated with an ointment. His cold is gone completely. His strength and weight is only just below normal. He will need two days of quiet and rest, but he is fine.
“Harry’s illness is gone as well, but there is scarring in his lungs. He will have asthma. I will give you the recipe for the inhalant he will need for his attacks, Severus. They will be random at first, but some of the damage can be healed and then the attacks will only happen when he is over-emotional or fatigued. The minor damage to his brain is gone completely. He will still tire easily and will need to continue to nap during the day. His weight…” Here she shook her head. “It is dangerously low. He will be confined to bed for the rest of this week and our main goal will be to get him to eat as much as he can.”
Severus didn’t wait for any more information, nor did he bother to thank the woman for all her care. He turned and strode quickly back up the stairs toward the boys’ room. Narcissa gave a short bow and hurried after him. The nurse snorted at them and Dumbledore smiled with his eyes twinkling brightly.
“Thank you, Poppy.” Remus smiled.
The nurse smiled back as she took a seat tiredly, “You are welcome. I care about those boys as much as anyone else.”
“I know.” Remus assured her and went to the stove to prepare her a cup of tea. “We are still grateful.”
“I don’t know what you see in that man, Remus.” She sighed as she took the cup. “I’d think you two wouldn’t get along. You’re both so different.”
“Who else would have the tolerance and patience to put up with him?” Remus laughed.
“Now that you put it that way…” She grinned. “You’re perfect for each other!”
…
Severus entered the room and wasn’t surprised to see Draco had climbed into his Harry’s bed. His face hardened with worry as he really looked at the young teens. They both had a vacant, shell-shocked look to their glazed eyes that he didn’t like. And he could already tell by the thinness of Harry’s wrist and gauntness of his face that the boy was skeletal.
“Harry? Draco?” He put gently placed his hands on their head and stroked their hair.
“Are you alright? Can we get you anything?” Narcissa added, coming up and holding her son’s hand.
“No.” Draco answered softly. His voice was dull and lifeless.
…
Neither of the boys woke from their numb stupor, but Poppy and Dr. Lauren assured the adults that this was expected and they should just give the young Lord space and time. They all worked hard to get them both completely healthy again. After the second day, Draco was released from bed rest and Narcissa made him return to lessons. He went through them like a robot, answering questions with as few words as possible and never initiated contact, though he didn’t like being alone. He made sure someone from his family was with him every minute. And at night, he’d still crawl in bed with Harry.
Harry wasn’t allowed to get up unless it was to use the bathroom. Remus and Severus spent the days reading to him or telling him stories. As the days passed and he began to slowly put on weight and regain strength, his eyes began to thaw. He began to smile more and participate in conversations. And as he became more aware and engaged in his surroundings, he began to really worry for his best friend.
He remembered all that Draco went through just to protect him. How the blonde had suffered because Harry couldn’t walk on his own or because he had gotten sick. Why had he waited so long to try and break the collars? Why did he just assume he wouldn’t be able to? If he had broken the collars sooner, Draco wouldn’t have had to struggle so much. And… he forced himself to remember Devon. And Draco had protected him at great cost to himself. He had done that and had made sure Harry couldn’t help. And it was all his fault.
…
It was Thursday night and Harry had finally fought through his guilt and fear, and he had promised himself he’d try and talk to Draco. The blonde came to bed and smelled like soap. Harry smiled tearfully and pulled the blonde into a hug. Draco wrapped his arms around him automatically, but there was no warmth in it. Harry began to cry.
“I’m sorry.” He whispered. “I’m so sorry. It’s all my fault. You have every reason to hate me and I’d understand if you didn’t want to be with me anymore. You don’t have to pretend anymore, okay? Just tell me, Draco. Tell me to go if you hate me.”
Draco blinked slowly, “What are you talking about?”
Harry propped himself up so that he was looking down at his friend. His green eyes were bright and filled with love and remorse. Draco felt something stir in him, but it was far away. He blinked again.
“You got hurt trying to save my life.” Harry explained. “I should have tried breaking the collars sooner and given you your back magic. I shouldn’t have been so weak and make you carry me. The Death Eaters caught up to us because of me and it’s my fault. And I… I should have taken care of Devon with you. You shouldn’t have faced that alone, Ray. You did what was needed and I wasn’t strong enough to help, and now you’re hurt and Madam Pomfrey says there is nothing they can do.”
Harry collapsed and cried into his chest. Draco felt something in him crack. His arms tightened around his friend and he was flooded with emotions. It was like someone flipped a switch in him. All the fear, desperation, anger, and horror that had been held at arms length crashed through him and he began to sob. Harry clung to him and rocked him, whispering promises that it would be alright and that he loved him.
“No!” Draco shook his head hard. “No!” He couldn’t put it into words, but he felt dirty. He felt so incredibly soiled. He could feel the rock in his hand. He could see Devon’s face. This was Blaise’s beloved older brother. Blaise had been his friend for a very long time and even though they weren’t friends any longer, pulled to different sides in this war by circumstance, he felt horrible.
Harry couldn’t feel Draco’s emotions the way the blonde could feel his, but he knew what had Draco shivering and shaking in his arms. He stroked the blonde’s hair and spoke to him softly. “Draco, you did what you had to. You know from the vision that they didn’t find Devon until a lot later that night. It gave us a whole day to get distance between us and the Death Eaters before they started looking for us. You saved our lives.”
“I should have found another way.” Draco shook his head, but was beginning to really listen to his friend.
“There was no other way. We didn’t have magic at the time and we were twelve. How could we force Devon to come with us against his will without alerting the Death Eaters? He chose to kidnap us and he chose to work for the Dark. Dad said this is a war and everyone who fights in it has to be prepared that one day they will not come out as the winner. Devon, and even Blaise, knew what they were doing. We had every right to protect ourselves, Ray.” Tears began to spill from Harry’s eyes and he hid his face against Draco’s neck. “You were strong when I couldn’t be. Thank you, Draco, for protecting me… For being my strength…”
Draco was still crying, but as Harry’s words sank in he felt himself calming. It was still horrible, but… but maybe it would be alright. Maybe he could forgive himself, if Harry could forgive him. Hands caressed his cheeks and his eyes opened wide as Harry’s mouth brushed his. His heart began to beat hard and his breath quickened. Harry’s tear stained face looked back at him.
“I love you, Draco. Please forgive me for not helping you more when you needed me. I promise I will do better from now on.” Harry pleaded.
“You did the best you could.” Draco said hoarsely and reached up to brush his baby’s hair from his beautiful face. “You are strong, Harry. You may not be able to carry me, but you brought me back. You kept me moving and you never turned away from me. I would have given up if it weren’t for you there with me.”
Harry smiled and leaned down again. Draco kissed him back and for the first time he realized that something more than brotherly love was spreading through him. He had always known he loved Harry. He had always known he had to look after the smaller boy, but this… this was something much more. Harry pulled away from the kiss, his eyes wide and his mouth parted slightly with surprise. He had felt it too. Draco hesitated. He knew Harry had been hurt, even if Harry didn’t, should they be doing this?
“Ray…” Harry’s eyes filled with uncertainty. And if it weren’t for the bond that let Draco sense Harry’s emotions, he would have pulled away thinking Harry was uncomfortable, but the fear that bloomed in his heart was the fear of rejection. Draco smiled and pulled Harry down for another kiss. There was no way he’d let his baby fear rejection from him. Harry didn’t deserve it and kissing felt so good, so right.
Their mouths pressed against each other and unlike the closed-mouth pecks they had shared before, they lingered. Their lips slid across each other and came back, soft as silk. Heat radiated between them and Draco felt as if he was being warmed from the inside out. Wordlessly, Harry surrounded him with his arms and parted his lips slightly to gasp in a shaky breath.
“I love you, Baby.” Draco whispered.
Harry smiled in delight and hugged the blonde. He had been shocked by his feelings, but, as was his nature, he accepted them quickly. It had been coming for awhile, he guessed. He had felt jealous of Pansy when she said she and Draco had tried to be in a relationship. And he’d never felt the way he did about Draco for Ron or Hermione.
He admired the blonde and trusted him more deeply than anyone else he’d ever known. He was beautiful and strong. He was just Draco and Harry wanted to be with and close to him always. He wanted him to be happy and wanted to share everything with him. He loved him like their Dad loved Moony. The joy he felt when Draco made it clear he loved him in return made him want to dance around. His cheeks hurt from smiling so much.
“Stop.” Draco laughed, getting high off Harry’s powerful happiness and his own.
Harry grinned and darted in for another kiss. “Thank you, Ray.”
“For what?” Draco smiled back.
“For loving me…. I know Dad loves me, and so does Moony, but…” Harry’s joy settled down into a powerful contentment. “You’re the one who was always there for me and no one has ever loved me the way you do. Nothing’s the same without you.”
“Same here.” Draco agreed, tucking Harry’s head under his chin as Harry lay out on his chest.
“Good night.” Harry smiled sleepily. His lips were still warm from being pressed against Draco’s. He hoped they would do that again a lot in the future. He sighed happily and cuddled up against Draco’s strong, protecting side.
“Night.” The blonde whispered with a smile.
…
Severus and Narcissa weren’t sure what happened. They woke up Friday morning and found Draco responding to them again. He’d returned from his defensive withdraw from the world and he seemed happier than he had in a long time. Remus took it all in stride and hugged both of the boys. He joked and played with them until Narcissa forced Draco to go with her downstairs to continue their studies. Severus sat with his lover and son and looked questioningly at the brunette.
Harry smiled at him. “We just talked.” His face turned serious. “But I think we need to talk to you as well. I haven’t really told you… all that happened.” He looked at his hands and Remus put an arm around his shoulders lovingly.
“We’ll talk after dinner.” Severus decided. “Now eat your snack.”
“That’s all I ever do.” Harry laughed, his good mood returning quickly.
Remus laughed and ruffled his hair before tucking the blankets more securely around Harry’s tiny legs and waist and setting a tray in his lap. Severus made sure the teen ate everything, though he swore he wasn’t hungry. Harry usually pouted, but today he did as he was told. He knew he was too thin. Draco was much bigger than him and was by no means fat. He wanted to get stronger. For Draco and for himself. There was still Voldemort to fight.
“Moony, Dad… Where’s Sirius?” He asked, just remembering that he wanted to ask. “Is he still in hiding?”
Both men stilled and went tense. Harry’s eyes widened and the fork clattered to the tray. “No.” He shook his head. Tear welled in his eyes and Severus quickly hugged him. Harry clung to his robes and sobbed. Draco came into the room at a fast walk and quickly climbed on the bed to wrap Harry in a loving hug from behind.
Remus’ eyes widened, distracted from his bad memories. He had spent a lot of time with the boys and was more aware of how the boys acted with each other than either Severus or Narcissa. And though it was normal for Draco to hold Harry, there was a faint difference in the way he did it this time and Remus knew what that was.
The boys were thirteen now and hormones had just begun to influence their relationship as a faint hint of sexuality hung between them. He looked worriedly at Harry, but the small brunette turned from Severus eagerly and calmed as soon as Draco began whispering in his ear. So it was mutual. In fact, from what Remus could tell, Harry may even have been the instigator.
He shook his head again. He wondered how Severus would react. He knew Narcissa would not be happy. Maybe they could keep it from her for a while? He had a faint suspicion that Severus would push the sex talk onto him and he sighed. It was harder being a parent than he had ever guessed.
…
Harry had calmed and accepted the fact that Sirius was dead. It still hurt and he wanted to know how he died, but respected his Dad and Remus and didn’t push when they said it was better if he was told at another time. Draco stayed by his side the rest of the day and they read quietly together, curled up and holding hands.
He felt much better with his – boyfriend? The thought made him blush hotly, but he was too shy to ask Draco what exactly they were – by his side. He knew the blonde was sad for him, but from the content expression on his face, Draco was also pleased that he could make Harry feel better. Harry shook his head and kissed the blonde’s cheek.
“What was that for?” Draco smiled.
“Just for being cute.” Harry grinned.
“Then I expect a lot of those.” Draco laughed. His smile gentled, but didn’t disappear. “You ready for dinner?”
“Yeah. I told Dad we needed to talk to him afterward.” Harry remembered. “I think it would be a good idea if we talked about… Devon and other things.”
Draco looked away. “Maybe you’re right.”
“I’ll be there.” Harry promised and squeezed his hand.
Draco nodded and helped his friend stand. Last night, Harry had been allowed to go to dinner in the kitchen and Harry was determined to do it again, and this time get there without needing to be carried halfway. They met Severus and Remus in the hall. The two were on the way to come and tell them dinner was ready.
Draco knew by the look on his father’s face that he was aware that his relationship with Harry had changed. There was a calculating and evaluating spark in his black eyes. Severus was still deciding if it were a good thing or not. Draco met his gaze without flinching and continued to support Harry as he made it down the stairs.
Harry was halfway there when his lungs decided to protest. He had been breathing a bit heavily from the exertion, but now he was having to gasp in twice as much air, half of it not helping him any. Wheezing, he stopped and fumbled at his clothes. Panic clawed at him, but it was a simple matter to ignore it. His father and Draco were right there. Moony too. They weren’t going to let him suffocate.
He placed the mouth-piece to his inhaler at his mouth and sucked deeply three times. His lungs unclenched reluctantly. He smiled at the others to let them know it worked, and they talked softly to each other about lessons and possibly starting to duel again while they waited for him to recover. No one wanted to hurry him. Harry smiled at that and shook his head. He never thought he’d ever find a family that actually would love him. He thought of the Dursleys and Sirius and felt a moment of humbling gratitude that he had any family at all.
(接3樓)
[ 本帖最后由 寧 于 2009-7-24 19:41 编辑 ] |
|